Part One

1 The Acceptance Ceremony

For a few weeks each summer, the sky over Kyralia cleared to a harsh blue and the sun beat down relentlessly. In the city of Imardin, the streets were dusty and the masts of ships in the Marina writhed behind the heat haze, while men and women retreated to their homes to fan themselves and sip juices or—in the rougher parts of the slums—drink copious amounts of bol.

But in the Magicians’ Guild of Kyralia these scorching days hailed the approach of an important occasion: the swearing in of the summer intake of novices.

Sonea grimaced and tugged at the collar of her dress. Though she had wanted to wear the same simple, but well-made clothes she had worn while living in the Guild, Rothen had insisted that she needed something fancier for the Acceptance Ceremony.

Rothen chuckled. “Don’t worry, Sonea. It will all be over soon and you’ll have robes to wear—and I’m sure you’ll get sick of those soon enough.”

“I’m not worried,” Sonea told him irritably.

His eyes brightened with amusement. “Really? You don’t feel even a little nervous?”

“It’s not like the Hearing last year. That was wild.”

“Wild?” His eyebrows rose. “You are nervous, Sonea. You haven’t let that one slip in for weeks.”

She gave a small sigh of exasperation. Since the Hearing five months earlier, when Rothen had won the right to be her guardian, he had given her the education that all novices must attain before starting at the University. She could read most of his books without help, and she could write, as Rothen put it, “well enough to get by.” Mathematics had been harder to grasp, but the history lessons were fascinating.

During those months, Rothen had corrected her whenever she spoke a word of slum slang, and constantly made her rephrase and repeat herself until she sounded like a lady of a powerful Kyralian House. He warned her that the novices would not be as accepting of her past as he was, and she would only make things worse if she drew attention to her origins every time she spoke. He had used the same argument to persuade her to wear a dress for the Acceptance Ceremony, and though she knew he was right, it did not make her feel any more comfortable.

A circle of carriages came into view as they reached the front of the University. Beside each stood a set of primly dressed servants, all wearing the colors of the House they served. As Rothen appeared they turned and bowed to him.

Sonea stared at the carriages and felt her stomach turn over. She had seen vehicles like this before, but not so many together. Each was made of highly polished wood, carved and painted with intricate designs, and in the center of each door was a square design indicating which House the carriage belonged to—the House incal. She recognized the incals for Paren, Arran, Dillan and Saril, some of the most influential Houses in Imardin.

The sons and daughters of those Houses were going to be her classmates.

At that thought her stomach felt as if it were turning inside out. What would they think of her, the first Kyralian from outside the great Houses to join their ranks for centuries? At the worst they would agree with Fergun, the magician who had tried to prevent her joining the Guild last year. He believed that only the offspring of the Houses should be allowed to learn magic. By imprisoning her friend, Cery, he had blackmailed Sonea into cooperating with his schemes. And those schemes would have proven to the Guild that Kyralians of the lower classes were lacking in morals and not to be trusted with magic.

But Fergun’s crime had been discovered, and he had been sent away to a distant fort. It did not seem to Sonea like a particularly severe punishment for threatening to kill her friend, and she could not help wondering if it would deter others from doing something similar.

She hoped that some of the novices would be like Rothen, who didn’t care that she had once lived and worked in the slums. Some of the other races that attended the Guild might be more accepting of a girl from the lower classes, too. The Vindo were a friendly people; she had met several in the slums who had traveled to Imardin to work in vineyards and orchards. The Lan, she had been told, did not have lower and higher classes. They lived in tribes and ranked men and women through trials of bravery, cunning and wisdom—though where that would place her in their society she couldn’t guess.

Looking up at Rothen, she thought of all he had done for her and felt a pang of affection and gratitude. Once she would have been horrified to find herself so dependent on, of all people, a magician. She had hated the Guild once, and first used her powers unintentionally when throwing a stone at a magician in anger. Then, as they searched for her, she had been so sure they meant to kill her she had dared to seek the Thieves’ help, and they always extracted a high price for such favors.

As her powers grew uncontrollable, the magicians convinced the Thieves to hand her over into their care. Rothen had been her captor and teacher. He had proven to her that magicians—well, most of them—were not the cruel, selfish monsters that the slum dwellers believed them to be.

Two guards stood at either side of the open University doors. Their presence was a formality observed only when important visitors were expected at the Guild. They bowed stiffly as Rothen led Sonea into the Entrance Hall.

Though she had seen it a few times before, the hall still amazed her. A thousand impossibly thin filaments of a glass-like substance sprouted from the floor, supporting stairs that spiraled gracefully up to the higher levels. Delicate threads of white marble wove between rails and stairs like branches of a climbing vine. They looked too fine to hold the weight of a man—and probably would be if they were not strengthened by magic.

Continuing past the stairs, they entered a short corridor. Beyond this was the rough gray of the Guildhall, an ancient building protected and enclosed by an enormous room known as the Great Hall. Several people were standing outside the Guildhall doors, and Sonea felt her mouth go dry at the sight of them. Men and women turned to see who was approaching and their eyes brightened with interest as they saw Rothen. The magicians among them nodded politely. The others bowed.

As he stepped into the Great Hall, Rothen led Sonea to one side of the small crowd. Sonea noted that, despite the summer warmth, all but the magicians were dressed in layers of opulent clothing. The women were draped in elaborate gowns; the men wore longcoats, the sleeves decorated with incal. Looking closer, she caught her breath. Every seam was sewn with tiny glints of red, green and blue stones. Huge gems were set into the buttons of the longcoats. Chains of precious metals looped around necks and wrists, and jewels sparkled on gloved hands.

Looking at one man’s longcoat, she considered how easy it would be for a professional thief to divest him of his buttons. There were small hinged blades available in the slums for that task. All it took was an “accidental” collision, an apology, and a hasty retreat. The man probably wouldn’t realize he’d been robbed until he got home. And that woman’s bracelet...

Sonea shook her head. How am I going to make friends with these people if all I can think of is how easy it would be to rob them? Yet she could not help smiling. She had been as skilled at picking pockets and locks as any of her childhood friends—except maybe Cery—and though her aunt Jonna had eventually persuaded Sonea that thieving was wrong, Sonea had not forgotten the tricks of the trade.

Gathering her courage, she looked at the younger strangers and saw several faces quickly turn away. Amused, she wondered what they had been expecting to see. A simpering beggar girl? A workwoman bent and coarsened from labor? A painted whore?

Since none of them would meet her gaze, she was able to examine them freely. Only two of the families had the typical Kyralian black hair and pale skin. One of the mothers was dressed in green Healer’s robes. The other held the hand of a thin girl who was gazing dreamily up at the glittering glass ceiling of the hall.

Three other families stood together, their short stature and reddish hair typical of the Elyne race. They talked quietly among themselves, and occasionally a laugh echoed in the hall.

A pair of dark-skinned Lonmar waited in silence. Heavy gold talismans of the Mahga religion hung over the father’s purple Alchemist robes, and both father and son had shaved off their hair. A second pair of Lonmar stood on the far side of the waiting families. The son’s skin was a paler brown, hinting at a mother of different race. The father, too, wore robes, but his were the red of a Warrior and he wore no jewelry or talismans.

Hovering near the corridor was a family of Vindo. Though the father was richly dressed, the furtive glances he directed at the others hinted that he felt uncomfortable in their company. Their son was a stocky youth whose brown skin had a sickly yellow cast to it.

As the boy’s mother rested a hand on his shoulder, Sonea thought of her aunt Jonna and uncle Ranel and felt a familiar disappointment. Though they were her only family, having raised her after her mother died and her father left, they had been too intimidated by the Guild to visit her there. When she had asked them to come to the Acceptance Ceremony they had declined, saying that they would not leave their newborn son in another’s care, and that it would not be proper to bring a crying baby to such an important ceremony.

Footsteps echoed in the corridor and Sonea turned to watch another grandly dressed trio of Kyralians join the visitors. The boy sent a haughty look around the circle of people. As his eyes swept around the room they fell upon Rothen, then slid to Sonea.

He looked directly into Sonea’s eyes and a friendly smile curled the edges of his mouth. Surprised, she began to smile in reply, but as she did his expression slowly twisted into a sneer.

Sonea could only stare back at him in dismay. The boy turned away dismissively, but not so quickly that she didn’t catch a smile of smug satisfaction. Sonea narrowed her eyes and watched as he turned his attention to the other entrants.

It appeared that he already knew the other Kyralian boy, and the two exchanged friendly winks. The girls were treated with dazzling smiles; while the thin Kyralian girl responded with apparent disdain, her eyes lingered on him long after he had turned away. The rest received polite nods.

A loud, metallic clunk interrupted the social game. All heads turned toward the Guildhall. A long, tense silence followed, then excited whispers filled the air as the enormous doors began to swing outward. As the gap widened, a familiar golden glow flowed from the hall within. The light came from thousands of tiny magical globes floating a few feet below the ceiling. A warm scent of wood and polish spilled out to welcome them.

Hearing gasps, Sonea turned to see that most of the visitors were gazing into the hall in wonder. She smiled as she realized that the other entrants, and some of the adults, would not have seen the Guildhall before. Only the magicians, and those parents who had attended ceremonies for older children, had been inside. And her.

She sobered as she remembered her previous visit, when the High Lord had brought Cery into the Guildhall, ending Fergun’s hold over her. For Cery, part of a dream had been fulfilled that day, too. Her friend had made a promise to himself that he would visit all of the great buildings of the city at least once during his lifetime. The fact that he was a low-born street urchin had only made fulfilling this dream a greater challenge for him.

But Cery was no longer the adventurous boy she had hung about with as a child, or the mischievous youth who had helped her evade the Guild for so long. Each time she saw him, when he visited her in the Guild or she had met him in the slums, he seemed older and less carefree. If she asked what he was doing with his time, or if he was still working for the Thieves, he smiled slyly and changed the subject.

He seemed content, however. And if he was working for the Thieves, perhaps it was better that she didn’t know what he was up to.

A robed figure strode forward to stand in the Guildhall doorway. Sonea recognized Lord Osen, the Administrator’s assistant. He raised a hand and cleared his throat.

“The Guild welcomes you all,” he said. “The Acceptance Ceremony will now begin. Would the University entrants please form a line. They will enter first; parents will follow after and take seats on the floor level.”

As the other entrants hurried forward, Sonea felt a hand touch her shoulder lightly. Turning, she looked up at Rothen.

“Don’t worry. It’ll all be over soon,” he reassured her.

She grinned in reply. “I’m not worried, Rothen.”

“Ha!” He gave her shoulder a gentle push. “Go on, then. Don’t keep them waiting.”

A small crowd had formed before the doors. Lord Osen’s lips thinned. “Form a line, please.”

As the entrants obeyed, Lord Osen looked over to Sonea. A quick smile touched his lips and Sonea nodded in reply. She fell in behind the last boy in the line. Then a quiet hiss to her left caught her attention.

“At least that one knows her place,” a voice murmured. Sonea turned her head slightly to see two Kyralian women standing nearby.

“That’s the slum girl, is it?”

“Yes,” replied the first. “I told Bina to keep away from her. I don’t want my sweet girl picking up any nasty habits—or diseases.”

The second woman’s reply was lost as Sonea moved away. She pressed a hand to her chest, surprised to find her heart beating rapidly. Get used to it, she told herself, there will be more of that. Resisting an urge to look back at Rothen, she straightened her shoulders and followed the other entrants down the long aisle in the center of the hall.

Once through the doors, the high walls of the Guildhall surrounded them. The seats on either side were less than half full, yet nearly all magicians living within the Guild and the city were present. Looking to her left, her eyes caught the cold gaze of an elderly magician. His lined face was set in a frown, and his eyes burned into hers.

Dragging her gaze back to the floor, Sonea felt her face heating. She realized, with annoyance, that her hands were shaking. Was she going to let herself tremble over the glare of an old man? She schooled her face to what she hoped was calm self-possession, and let her eyes skim across the rows of faces...

...and nearly stumbled as all the strength drained from her knees. It seemed that every magician in the hall was looking at her. Swallowing hard, she fixed her eyes on the back of the boy in front of her.

As the entrants reached the end of the aisle, Osen directed the first to the left, then the second to the right, and continued in this pattern until they stood in a line across the width of the hall. Finding herself in the middle of this line, Sonea faced Lord Osen. He stood silently, watching the activity behind her. She could hear a shuffling and a tinkling of jewelry, and guessed that the parents were moving into the rows of chairs behind them. As the hall quietened, Osen turned and bowed to the Higher Magicians sitting in the tiered rows of seats at the front of the Guildhall.

“I present the summer intake of entrants to the University.”


“This is much more interesting now there’s someone down there that I know,” Dannyl remarked as Rothen took his seat.

Rothen turned to regard his companion. “But last year your nephew was among the entrants.”

Dannyl shrugged. “I hardly know him. I know Sonea, though.”

Pleased, Rothen turned back to watch the ceremony. While Dannyl could be very charming if he wanted to, he did not make friends easily. This was largely because of an incident that had happened years before, when Dannyl was a novice. Accused of “inappropriate” interest in an older boy, Dannyl had endured speculation from novices and magicians alike. He had been shunned and taunted, and this was the reason, Rothen believed, that Dannyl didn’t trust or befriend many people even now.

Rothen had been Dannyl’s only close friend for years. As a teacher, Rothen had regarded Dannyl as one of the more promising novices in his classes. When he had seen the ill effects the rumor and scandal were having on Dannyl’s learning, he had decided to take on the boy’s guardianship. With a little encouragement, and a lot of patience, he had turned Dannyl’s quick mind from gossip and vengeful pranks back to magic and knowledge.

Some magicians had expressed doubts that Rothen could “straighten Dannyl out.” Rothen smiled. Not only had he succeeded, but Dannyl had just been appointed Second Guild Ambassador to Elyne. Looking down at Sonea, Rothen wondered if she, too, would one day give him a reason to feel this smug.

Dannyl leaned forward. “They’re just children compared to Sonea, aren’t they?”

Looking at the other boys and girls, Rothen shrugged. “I don’t know their exact ages, but the average for new entrants is fifteen. She’s nearly seventeen. A few years will make little difference.”

“I think it will,” Dannyl murmured, “but hopefully it will be an advantage to her.”

Below, Lord Osen slowly walked along the line of University entrants, announcing names and titles according to the custom of each boy or girl’s homeland.

“Alend of the family Genard.” Osen took two more steps. “Kano of the family Temo, Shipbuilder’s Guild.” Another step. “Sonea.”

Osen paused, then moved on. As he announced the next name, Rothen felt a pang of sympathy for Sonea. The lack of a grand title or House name had publicly declared her an outsider. It could not be helped, however.

“Regin of the family Winar, House Paren,” Osen finished as he reached the last boy.

“That’s Garrel’s nephew, isn’t it?” Dannyl asked.

“Yes.”

“I’ve heard that his parents asked if he could join last winter’s class three months after it had started.”

“That’s odd. Why did they do that?”

“I don’t know.” Dannyl shrugged. “I didn’t catch that bit.”

“Have you been spying again?”

“I don’t spy, Rothen. I listen.”

Rothen shook his head. He might have stopped Dannyl-the-novice from indulging in vengeful pranks, but he hadn’t yet managed to discourage Dannyl-the-magician from gathering gossip. “I don’t know what I’m going to do when you leave. Who will keep me informed about all the Guild’s little intrigues?”

“You’ll just have to pay more attention,” Dannyl replied.

“I have wondered if the Higher Magicians are sending you away to stop you ‘listening’ so much.”

Dannyl smiled. “Ah, but they say the best way to find out what is going on in Kyralia is to spend a few days listening to gossip in Elyne.”

Echoing footsteps drew their attention back to the hall. University Director Jerrik had risen from his seat among the Higher Magicians, and was descending the stairs to the front. He stopped in the center of the floor and swept his eyes across the line of entrants, his face set in its usual sour and disapproving scowl.

“Today, each of you take the first step to becoming a magician of the Guild of Kyralia,” he began, his voice stern. “As a novice you will be required to obey the rules of the University. By the Treaties that bind the Allied Lands, these rules are endorsed by all rulers, and all magicians are expected to enforce them. Even if you do not graduate, you are still bound to them.” He paused, looking intently at the entrants. “To join the Guild you must make a vow, and that vow has four parts.

“Firstly, you must vow never to harm another man or woman unless in defense of the Allied Lands. This includes people of any class, station, criminal status, or age. All vendettas, whether personally or politically motivated, end here today.

“Secondly, you must vow to obey the rules of the Guild. If you do not already know these rules, make it your first task to learn them. Ignorance is no excuse.

“Thirdly, you must vow to obey the orders of any magician unless those orders involve breaking a law. That said, we treat this with some flexibility. You are not required to do anything that you feel is morally wrong or conflicts with your religion or traditions. But do not presume to decide yourself when and how flexible we should be. In such a circumstance you should bring the matter to me, and it will be dealt with appropriately.

“And finally, you must vow that you will never use magic unless instructed by a magician. This is for your protection. Do not perform any magic without supervision, unless you have been given permission to do so by your teacher or guardian.”

Jerrik paused, and the silence that followed was devoid of the usual shifting and shuffling. His expressive eyebrows rose, and he straightened his shoulders.

“As tradition states, a Guild magician may claim guardianship of a novice, to guide his or her training in the University.” He turned to face the tiers behind him. “High Lord Akkarin, do you wish to claim guardianship of any of these entrants?”

“I do not,” spoke a cool, dark voice.

While Jerrik posed the same question to the other Higher Magicians, Rothen looked up at the black-robed leader of the Guild. Like most Kyralians, Akkarin was tall and slim, his angular face accentuated by the old-fashioned style of wearing his hair long and tied at the nape of the neck.

As always, Akkarin’s expression was distant as he watched the proceedings. He had never shown any interest in guiding the training of a novice, and most families had given up hoping that their son might be favored by the Guild leader.

Though young for a High Lord, Akkarin had a presence that inspired respect from even the most conservative and influential magicians. He was skilled, knowledgeable and intelligent, but it was his magical strength that earned him the awe of so many. His powers were known to be so great that some estimated he was stronger than the rest of the Guild combined.

But thanks to Sonea, Rothen was one of only two magicians who knew the real reason behind the High Lord’s immense strength.

Before the Thieves had handed her over, Sonea and her thief-friend, Cery, had explored the Guild late one night. They had come in the hope that, by watching magicians using magic, she might learn to control her powers. Instead, she had witnessed the High Lord performing a strange ritual. She had not understood what she had seen, but when Administrator Lorlen had truth-read her to confirm Fergun’s crimes, during the guardianship Hearing, he had seen her memory of that night and recognized the ritual.

High Lord Akkarin, leader of the Guild, practiced black magic.

Ordinary magicians knew nothing about black magic, except that it was forbidden. The Higher Magicians knew only enough to recognize it. Even knowing how to perform black magic was a crime. From Sonea’s communication with Lorlen, Rothen now knew that black magic enabled a magician to strengthen himself by drawing power from other people. If all power was taken, the victim died.

Rothen could not guess what it had been like for Lorlen to discover that his closest friend not only had learned about black magic, but was using it. It must have been a shock. Yet at the same time, Lorlen had realized that he could not expose Akkarin without endangering the Guild and the city. If Akkarin chose to fight, he could easily win, and with each kill he would grow stronger. So Lorlen, Sonea and Rothen must keep their knowledge secret for now. How hard must it be, Rothen wondered, for Lorlen to pretend friendship when he knew what Akkarin was capable of?

Despite this knowledge, Sonea had agreed to join the Guild. This amazed Rothen at first, until she had pointed out that if she left with her powers blocked—as the law required for magicians who chose not to join the Guild—she would have been a tempting source of power for the High Lord. Strong in magic, but unable to use it to defend herself. Rothen shuddered. At least, in the Guild, it would be noticed if she died under strange circumstances.

Even so, it had been a brave decision, knowing what lay at the heart of the Guild. Looking at her, standing among the sons and daughters of some of the richest families in the Allied Lands, he felt both pride and affection. In the last six months he had come to think of her more as a daughter than a student.

“Do any magicians wish to claim guardianship of any of these entrants?”

Rothen jumped as he realized that his turn to speak had come. He opened his mouth, but before he could say anything another voice spoke the ritual words.

“I have made a selection, Director.”

The voice came from the other side of the hall. All the entrants turned to see who had risen from their seat.

“Lord Yarrin,” Jerrik acknowledged. “Which entrant do you wish to claim guardianship of?”

“Gennyl, of the family Randa and the House of Saril, and the Greater Clan of Alaraya.”

A faint murmur of voices rose in the ranks of the magicians. Looking down, Rothen saw that the boy’s father, Lord Tayk, was sitting forward in his chair.

Jerrik waited until the voices subsided, then tilted his head expectantly toward Rothen.

“Do any other magicians wish to claim guardianship of one of these entrants?”

Rothen rose. “I have made a selection, Director.”

Sonea looked up, her mouth tight as she tried not to smile.

“Lord Rothen,” Jerrik replied, “which entrant do you wish to claim guardianship of?”

“I wish to claim guardianship of Sonea.”

No murmuring followed his choice, and Jerrik merely nodded in acknowledgment. Rothen returned to his seat.

“That’s it,” Dannyl whispered. “Your last chance has gone. There’ll be no getting out of it now. She’s got you well and truly wrapped around her finger for the next five years.”

“Shush,” Rothen replied.

“Do any other magicians wish to claim guardianship of one of these entrants?” Jerrik repeated.

“I have made a selection, Director.”

The voice came from Rothen’s left, and was followed by the sound of chairs creaking as people turned or shifted in their seats. The hall echoed with excited chatter as Lord Garrel rose.

“Lord Garrel,” there was surprise in Jerrik’s voice, “which entrant do you wish to claim guardianship of?”

“Regin, of the family Winar and the House of Paren.”

The chatter changed to a collective sigh of understanding. Looking down, Rothen saw that the boy at the end of the line wore a grin. The voices and creaking of chairs continued for several minutes until Jerrik raised his arms for silence.

“I’d keep an eye on those two novices and their guardians,” Dannyl murmured. “Nobody usually selects a novice in their First Year. They’re probably doing it simply to prevent Sonea having a higher status than the rest of her classmates.”

“Or, I’ve started a trend,” Rothen mused. “And Garrel may have already seen potential in his nephew. That would explain why Regin’s family wanted him to start classes early.”

“Are there any other guardianship claims?” Jerrik called. Silence followed, and he dropped his arms. “Would all magicians intending to claim guardianship come to the front.”

Rothen rose and made his way to the end of the seats, then down the stairs. Joining Lord Garrel and Lord Yarrin, he waited beside Director Jerrik as a young novice, flushed with excitement at having a role in the ceremony, came forward carrying a stack of brown-red cloth. The magicians each selected a bundle.

“Would Gennyl please come forward,” Jerrik ordered.

One of the Lonmar boys hurried forward and bowed. His eyes were wide as he faced Lord Jerrik, and as he spoke the Novices’ Vow his voice trembled. Lord Yarrin handed the boy his robes, and guardian and novice stepped aside. Lord Jerrik turned toward the entrants again.

“Would Sonea please come forward.”

She walked stiffly toward Jerrik. Though her face was pale, she bowed gracefully and spoke the vow in a clear, unwavering voice. Rothen stepped forward and handed her the bundle of robes.

“I hereby take guardianship of you, Sonea. Your learning is my concern and task until you graduate from the university.”

“I will obey you, Lord Rothen.”

“May you both benefit from this arrangement,” Jerrik finished.

As they moved aside to stand next to Lord Yarrin and Gennyl, Jerrik called the still smiling youth from the end of the line.

“Would Regin please come forward.”

The boy strode confidently to Jerrik, but his bow was shallow and hurried. As the ritual phrases were repeated, Rothen looked down at Sonea, wondering what she was thinking. She was a member of the Guild now, and that was no small thing.

She looked at the boy to her right, and Rothen followed her gaze. Gennyl stood with his back straight and his face flushed. He’s just about bursting with pride, Rothen mused. To have a guardian, especially at this point, was proof that an entrant was exceptionally gifted.

Few would believe this about Sonea, however. He suspected that most magicians assumed he had chosen to be her guardian simply to remind all that he had been instrumental in finding her. They would not have believed him if he told them of her strength and talent. But they would find out, and knowing it gave him some satisfaction.

After Regin and Lord Garrel had spoken the ritual words, they moved to Rothen’s left. The boy kept glancing at Sonea, his expression calculating. She either did not notice, or was ignoring him. Instead, she watched intently as Jerrik called the rest of the entrants forward to speak the vow. As each accepted their robes, they formed a line next to the guardians and their novices.

When the last of the entrants had joined the line, Lord Jerrik turned to regard them.

“You are now novices of the Magicians’ Guild,” he announced. “May the coming years be prosperous for all of you.”

As one, the novices bowed. Lord Jerrik nodded and moved to one side.

“I extend a welcome to our new novices and wish them many years of success.” Sonea jumped as Lorlen’s voice rang out from behind her. “I now declare this Acceptance Ceremony concluded.”

The Guildhall began to echo with the sound of voices. The rows of robed men and women stirred as if caught by a strong wind. They rose and began to descend to the floor, filling the hall with the clatter of footsteps. As the new novices realized the formalities were over, they moved in all directions. Some rushed to their parents, others examined the bundle in their hands or gazed around at the sudden activity. At the end of the Guildhall the great doors began to open slowly.

Sonea turned to look up at Rothen. “That’s it, then. I’m a novice.”

He smiled. “Glad it’s all over?”

She shrugged. “I get the feeling it’s only just begun.” Her eyes flickered over his shoulder. “Here’s your shadow.”

Rothen turned to find Dannyl striding toward him.

“Welcome to the Guild, Sonea.”

“Thank you, Ambassador Dannyl,” Sonea replied, bowing.

Dannyl laughed. “Not yet, Sonea. Not yet.”

Sensing someone new at his side, Rothen turned to find the University Director standing next to him.

“Lord Rothen,” Jerrik said, giving Sonea a tired smile as she bowed.

“Yes?” Rothen replied.

“Will Sonea be moving into the Novices’ Quarters? It never crossed my mind to ask until now.”

Rothen shook his head. “She’ll be staying with me. I have plenty of room for her in my apartments.”

Jerrik’s brows rose. “I see. I will tell Lord Ahrind. Excuse me.”

Rothen watched the old man walk over to a thin, hollow-cheeked magician. Lord Ahrind frowned and glanced over at Sonea as Jerrik spoke to him.

“What happens now?” Sonea asked.

Rothen nodded to the bundle in her hands. “We see if these robes fit properly.” He looked at Dannyl. “And I think a little celebration is in order. Coming?”

Dannyl smiled. “I wouldn’t miss it.”

2 The First Day

The sun was warm on his back as Dannyl stepped up to the carriage. He drew on a little magic to lift the first of his chests onto the roof. As the second settled next to it he sighed and shook his head.

“I suspect I’m going to regret taking so much,” he muttered. “Yet I keep thinking of things I wish I’d packed.”

“I’m sure you’ll be able to buy anything you need in Capia,” Rothen told him. “Lorlen has certainly given you a generous allowance.”

“Yes, that was a pleasant surprise.” Dannyl grinned. “Perhaps you’re right about his reasons for sending me away.”

Rothen’s eyebrow rose. “He must know it would take more than sending you to another country to keep you out of trouble.”

“Ah, but I’m going to miss fixing all your problems, my friend.” As the driver opened the carriage door, Dannyl turned to look at the older magician. “Are you coming to the Marina?”

Rothen shook his head. “Classes start in less than an hour.”

“For both you and Sonea.” Dannyl nodded. “Then this is it—time to say goodbye.”

They regarded each other solemnly for a moment, then Rothen gripped Dannyl’s shoulder and smiled. “Take care of yourself. Try not to fall overboard.”

Dannyl chuckled and returned the clasp. “Take care, old friend. Don’t let that new novice of yours wear you out. I’ll be back in a year or so to check on your progress.”

“Old friend, indeed!” Rothen pushed Dannyl toward the carriage. After climbing inside, Dannyl turned to see a thoughtful expression on his friend’s face.

“I never thought I’d see you running off on such glorious escapades, Dannyl. You seemed so content here, and you’ve rarely set foot outside the gates since you graduated.”

Dannyl shrugged. “I guess I was waiting for the right reason.”

Rothen made a rude noise. “Liar. You’re just lazy. I hope the First Ambassador knows this, or he’s in for a nasty surprise.”

“He’ll find out soon enough.” Dannyl grinned.

“I’m sure he will.” Rothen smiled and stepped away from the carriage. “Off with you, then.”

Dannyl nodded. “Goodbye.” He tapped on the roof of the carriage. It jerked into motion, drawing him away. Sliding to the other side of the seat, Dannyl pulled back the screen covering the window and glimpsed Rothen still watching before the carriage turned again to pass through the Guild Gates.

He leaned back in the cushioned seat and sighed. Though he was pleased to be finally leaving, he knew he would miss his friends and familiar surroundings. Rothen had Sonea and the elderly couple Yaldin and Ezrille for company, but Dannyl would have only strangers.

Though he was looking forward to his new position, he was a bit intimidated by the duties and responsibilities he was taking on. Since the hunt for Sonea, however, during which he had located and negotiated with one of the Thieves, he had grown increasingly bored with his easy, mostly solitary life of study in the Guild.

He hadn’t realized just how bored he was until Rothen had told him he was being considered for the role of Second Ambassador. By the time Dannyl was summoned to the Administrator’s office, he could recite the name and position of every man and woman in the Elyne court and, to Lorlen’s amusement, numerous scandalous tales as well.

Deep into the Inner Circle the carriage turned onto the road that circled the Palace wall. Little could be seen of the grand Palace towers from this angle, so Dannyl slid to the other end of the seat to admire the elaborately decorated homes of the rich and powerful. At one street corner a new mansion was being constructed. He remembered the old crumbling structure that had once stood there, a relic from before the invention of magician-made architecture. The application of magic to stone and metal had enabled magicians to build fantastic buildings that defied normal structural limitations. Before the carriage moved past, Dannyl glimpsed two magicians standing beside the partly built new home, one holding up a large plan.

The carriage turned again and passed more grand homes, then slowed and rolled through the Inner Gates into the West Quarter. The guards barely glanced up as it passed, only pausing to note the Guild symbol painted on the side of the vehicle. The road continued through the West Quarter, between large and regal houses of a plainer style than those of the Inner Circle. Most belonged to merchants or crafters, who preferred this part of the city for its proximity to the Marina and Market.

As the carriage passed through the Western Gate, it entered a maze of stalls and booths. People of all races and classes filled the roads on either side. Stall holders called out their wares and prices over the endless buzz of voices, whistles, bells and animal calls. Though the road remained wide, sellers, customers, street performers and beggars crowded both sides so that carriages had barely enough room to pass each other.

The air was heavy with a confusion of smells. A breeze sweetened by the smell of bruised fruit was followed by another reeking of rotten vegetables. The fibrous smell of rush matting was swamped by the acrid, suffocating odor of something unwholesome as two men carried a vat of oily blue liquid past the carriage. Finally, the briny tang of the sea, and the subtle, pungent scent of river mud reached Dannyl and he felt his heartbeat quicken. The carriage turned a corner and the Marina came into view.

A forest of masts and ropes lay before him, dividing the sky into ribbons of blue. On either side of the road an endless river of people hurried past. Muscular carriers and crewmen hauled boxes, baskets and sacks on their backs. Carts of all sizes, drawn by all manner of animals, trundled by. The cries of sellers were replaced by shouted orders and the bellowing and bleating of livestock.

Still the carriage continued, taking him past larger and larger boats until he reached a row of sturdy merchant ships resting by a long pier. There it slowed and stopped, rocking back on its springs.

The door opened and the driver bowed respectfully.

“We have arrived, my lord.”

Dannyl slid across the seat and climbed out. A swarthy, white-haired man stood nearby, his face and bare arms well tanned. Behind him stood several younger men, all heavily built.

“You are Lord Dannyl?” the man asked, bowing stiffly.

“Yes. You are...?”

“Piermaster,” he said, then nodded at the carriage. “Yours?”

Dannyl guessed that he was referring to the chests. “Yes.”

“We’ll take ’em down.”

“No, I can save you the trouble.” Dannyl turned and focused his will. As each chest drifted down toward the ground, a pair of the young men came forward and caught it, apparently accustomed to the use of magic for such purposes. They started down the pier, the rest of the men following.

“Sixth ship along, my lord,” the Piermaster said as the carriage pulled away.

Dannyl nodded. “Thank you.”

As he reached the pier his footsteps began echoing hollowly on the wooden planking. Looking down, he saw glimpses of water through the cracks between the wide timbers. He followed the carriers around a great stack of boxes that were being loaded onto one ship, then a pile of what looked like well-wrapped carpets waiting beside another. Men were everywhere: hurrying up and down planks with loads on their shoulders, lounging on deck playing tiles, or striding about shouting orders.

Over the noise, Dannyl noted the subtler sounds of the Marina: the constant creak of boards and ropes, and the splash of water against hull and pier. He noticed small details: the decoration on masts and sails, the names painted carefully on hull and cabin, the water pouring from a hole in a ship’s side. He frowned at that last detail. Water was supposed to remain on the outside of a boat, wasn’t it?

Upon reaching the sixth ship, the carriers clomped up a narrow gangplank. Looking up, Dannyl saw a pair of men watching him from the ship. He started up the plank cautiously, then with more confidence when he found it sturdy enough despite the flexing of the wood. As he stepped onto the deck the two men greeted him with bows.

They looked remarkably alike. Their brown skin and small stature were typical Vindo characteristics. They both wore tough, colorless clothing. One, however, stood a little straighter than the other, and it was he who spoke.

“Welcome to the Fin-da, my lord. I am Captain Numo.”

“Thank you, captain. I am Lord Dannyl.”

The captain gestured to the chests, which were resting on the deck a few strides away, the carriers standing nearby. “No room for boxes in your room, my lord. We stow them below. You want anything, you ask my brother, Jano.”

Dannyl nodded. “Very well. There is one item I will collect before they take them away.”

The captain nodded once. “Jano show your room. We leaving soon.”

As the captain walked away, Dannyl touched the lid of the smaller chest. The lock snapped open. He removed a leather bag filled with necessities for the journey. Closing the lid again, he looked up at the carriers.

“This is all I’ll need—I hope.”

They bent and carried the trunks away. Turning, Dannyl looked at Jano expectantly. The man nodded and gestured for Dannyl to follow.

Passing through a narrow door, they descended a short stairway into a wide room. The ceiling was so low even Jano needed to stoop to duck under the beams. Roughly woven sheets were slung between hooks on the ceiling. These, he guessed, were the hanging beds he had heard about in stories and travellers’ accounts.

Jano led him into a narrow corridor and, after a few steps, opened a door. Dannyl stared at the tiny room in dismay. A low bed as wide as his shoulders filled the entire interior. A small cupboard had been built into one end, and good quality reber-wool blankets lay neatly folded at the other.

“Small, yai?”

Dannyl looked across at Jano to find the man grinning. He smiled wryly, knowing his dismay must have been obvious.

“Yes,” Dannyl agreed. “Small.”

“Captain has room twice as big. When we own big boat, we get big room, too, yai?”

Dannyl nodded. “Sounds fair.” He dropped his bag on the bed, then turned around so that he could sit down, his legs extending into the corridor. “It’s all I need.”

Jano tapped the opposite door. “My room. We keep each other company, yai? You sing?”

Before Dannyl could think of an answer a bell rang out somewhere above, and Jano looked up. “Must go. We leaving now.” He turned, then paused. “You stay here. Not get in way.” Without waiting for a reply, he hurried off.

Dannyl looked around the tiny room that would be his space for the next two weeks, and chuckled. Now he understood why so many magicians hated travelling by sea.


Stopping in the doorway of the classroom, Sonea felt her heart sink.

She had left Rothen’s rooms early, hoping to get to the classroom ahead of the other novices so that she’d have time to gain some control over her fluttering stomach before meeting them. But several seats were already occupied. As she hesitated, faces turned toward her, and her stomach shrank into a tight knot. She quickly looked away to the magician who sat at the front of the classroom.

He was younger than she had expected, probably only in his twenties. An angular nose gave his face a disdainful expression. As she bowed, he looked up, his eyes fixing on her face, travelling to her new boots, then rising back up to her face again. Satisfied, he looked down at a sheet of paper and made a small tick against the list written there.

“Choose a seat, Sonea,” he said dismissively.

The room contained twelve perfectly aligned tables and chairs. Six novices, all perched on the edge of their seats, watched her consider the arrangement.

Don’t sit too far from the other novices, she told herself. You don’t want them thinking you’re unfriendly—or scared of them. A few empty seats remained in the center of the room, but she didn’t like the idea of sitting in the middle, either. A chair against the far wall was vacant, flanked by three novices in the next row. That would do.

She was conscious of eyes following her as she moved to the chair. As she sat down she forced herself to look up at them.

At once the novices found something else to interest them. Sonea sighed with relief. She had been expecting more sneers. Perhaps only the boy she had encountered yesterday—Regin—was going to be openly unfriendly.

One by one the rest of the novices arrived at the door of the classroom, bowed to the teacher and took a seat. The shy Kyralian girl hastily took the first chair she came to. Another almost forgot to bow to the magician, then stumbled over to the seat in front of Sonea. He didn’t see her until he had reached the chair, and he stared at her in dismay before reluctantly sitting down.

The last novice to arrive was the unfriendly boy, Regin. He scanned the room with narrowed eyes before deliberately placing himself in the center of the group.

A distant gong sounded, and the magician rose from his chair. Several novices, including herself, jumped visibly at the movement. Before their teacher could speak, however, a familiar face appeared in the doorway.

“Are they all here, Lord Elben?”

“Yes, Director Jerrik,” the teacher replied.

The University Director hooked his thumbs in the brown sash about his waist and regarded the class.

“Welcome,” he said, his voice more stern than welcoming, “and congratulations. I offer this congratulation not because each of you has had the good fortune of being born with the rare and much envied ability to use magic. I offer it because each of you has been accepted into the university of the Magicians’ Guild. Some of you have come from countries far from here, and will not return to your homes for many years. Some of you may decide to stay here for most of your life. You are all, however, stuck here for the next five years.

“Why? To become a magician. What is a magician, then?” He smiled grimly. “There are many attributes that make up a magician. Some you already have, some you will develop, some you will learn. Some are more important than others.”

He stopped and swept his eyes over the class.

“What is the most important attribute of a magician?”

In the corner of her eye Sonea saw several of the novices straighten in their seats. Jerrik moved around the desk and strolled to her side of the room. He stared down at the boy in front of her.

“Vallon?”

Sonea saw the boy’s back hunch as if he wanted to slide under his table.

“H-how well he does something, my lord.” The boy’s weak voice was only just audible. “How much he has practiced.”

“No.” Jerrik turned on his heel and stalked to the other side of the class. He fixed one of the eager boys with his cold stare.

“Gennyl?”

“Strength, my lord,” the boy answered.

“Definitely not!” the University Director barked. He stepped forward, down between the rows of novices, and stopped by the timid Kyralian girl.

“Bina?”

The girl blinked prettily, then raised her head to gaze at the magician. His eyes bore into hers and she dropped her head quickly.

“Uh...” She paused, then brightened suddenly. “Goodness, my lord. How he or she uses magic.”

“No.” His tone was gentler. “Though a very important attribute and one we expect from all our magicians.”

Jerrik continued down the aisle. Sonea turned her head to watch him, but noticed that the other novices were staring rigidly at the front of the room. Feeling uneasy, she copied them, listening for the magician’s footsteps as he moved closer.

“Elayk?”

“Talent, my lord?” The boy’s Lonmar accent was strong.

“No.”

The footsteps grew closer. Sonea felt a tingling at the top of her spine. What would she say if he asked her? Surely all the possible answers had been offered already. She drew in a quiet breath and let it out slowly. He wouldn’t ask her anyway. She was the unimportant girl from the...

“Sonea?”

Her stomach lurched. Looking up, she saw Jerrik standing over her, his eyes growing chillier as she hesitated.

Then she knew the answer. It was easy. After all, she should know this better than any of the novices since she had nearly died when her own powers had grown uncontrollable. Jerrik knew this, which was probably why he had asked her.

“Control, my lord.”

“No.”

The magician sighed and moved to the front of the room. She stared at the grain of the wooden table before her, her face hot.

The University Director stopped in front of the desk and crossed his arms. He looked around the room again. The class waited, expectant and ashamed.

“The most important attribute of a magician is knowledge.” He paused, then looked at each of the novices who had spoken in turn. “Without it his strength is useless, he has nothing to be skilled or talented in, despite his best intentions.” The magician’s eyes flickered to Sonea. “Even if his powers surface of their own accord, he will soon be dead if he does not gain the knowledge of how to control them.”

As one, the class let out a breath. A few faces turned toward Sonea briefly. Frozen by self-consciousness, she kept her eyes on her desk.

“The Guild is the largest and most comprehensive store of knowledge in the world,” Jerrik continued, a note of pride rising in his voice. “During the years that you spend here that knowledge, or at least some part of it, will be given to you. If you pay attention, listen to what your teachers tell you, and make use of the sources here such as the extensive library, you will excel. However,” his tone darkened, “if you do not pay attention, pay your elders respect or take advantage of the centuries of knowledge gathered by your predecessors, you will shame only yourselves. The years ahead of you will not be easy,” he warned. “You must be dedicated, disciplined and dutiful,” he paused and scanned the faces before him, “if you are to reach your full potential as magicians of the Guild.”

The atmosphere in the room had changed from relief to a new kind of tension. The novices were so quiet that Sonea could hear them breathing. Jerrik straightened and put his hands behind his back.

“You are probably aware,” he said in a milder tone, “of the Three Levels of Control that are the foundation of your university education. The First, unlocking your power, you will achieve today. The Second, the ability to access, draw, and contain your power, will be your aim for the rest of this morning, and every morning, until you can achieve all three without thinking. The Third, grasping the many ways that power can be used, will be taught to you in the years between now and your graduation—though, regardless of which discipline you choose to specialize in after graduation, there will be no point at which you will have completed the Third Level. Once you have graduated, it will be up to you to expand upon the knowledge we have given you, but you will, of course, never know all there is to know.” He smiled thinly.

“The Guild holds more knowledge than you could absorb in a lifetime, probably more than you could learn in five lifetimes. We have the three disciplines of Healing, Alchemy and Warrior Skills. So that you may learn enough of one to become a useful and accomplished magician, your teachers, and those before them, have gleaned what information is most relevant and important to give to you.” He lifted his chin slightly. “Use this knowledge well, novices of the Magicians’ Guild of Kyralia.”

He cast his eyes over the classroom once more, then turned and, with a nod to Lord Elben, left the room.

The class was still and quiet. The teacher remained motionless, noting the expressions on the faces of his charges with a smile of satisfaction. Then he stepped around to the front of the large table and addressed them.

“Your first lesson in Control begins now. Each of you has been designated a teacher for this lesson. You will find them waiting for you next door. Rise and make your way to this room now.”

Chairs scraped on the wooden floor as the novices got eagerly to their feet. Sonea rose slowly. The teacher’s head turned and he regarded her coldly.

“Except you, Sonea,” he added, belatedly. “You will remain here.”

This time all of the novices turned to stare at her. She blinked from one face to another, feeling strangely guilty as understanding dawned in their eyes.

“Go on,” urged the teacher. The novices turned away. Sonea lowered herself back into her chair and watched the class file out. Only one turned to glance at her again before he stepped through the door. His lips curled up in a sneer. Regin.

“Sonea.”

She jumped and turned to stare at the teacher, surprised that he was still there.

“Yes, my lord.”

His eyes lost a little of their chilliness and he moved across the room to stand beside her seat. “As you have already achieved the First and Second Levels of Control, I have brought you the first book the class will study.” Sonea lowered her eyes to a small paper-covered book he held in his hand. “There will be practical exercises to go with the book, but they will involve all of the class. You will still gain much from studying the information in this.”

He placed the book on the table and turned away.

“Thank you, Lord Elben,” she said to his back.

He paused and turned to regard her with mild surprise, then continued to the door.

The room was empty and silent after he had gone. Sonea looked around at the other desks and chairs. She counted nine crooked seats.

She looked at the book on her desk and read: Six Lessons for New Novices, by Lord Liden, and a date. The book was over a century old. How many novices had worked their way through these exercises? She flicked through the pages. The script, she saw with relief, was clear and easy to read.

Magic is a useful art, but not without limitations. A magician’s natural area of influence lies within his or her body, the skin being the boundary of this area. Minimal effort is required to influence magic within this space. No other magician may influence this space, unless he or she is Healing, which requires skin to skin contact.

To influence what lies beyond the body, more effort is required. The farther away the object to be influenced is from the body, the more effort is required. The same limitation is true of mental communication, though it is not as taxing as most magical tasks.

Rothen had told her as much, but she continued reading. Some time later, after she had read three of the lessons and was beginning on the fourth, two novices returned to the room. The first she recognized as Gennyl, the half-Lonmar boy who had gained a guardian during the ceremony. His companion was the other tall Lonmar boy. They glanced at her once as they moved to seats halfway down the classroom. She could sense a difference about them, as if their presence was amplified. She guessed this meant their powers had been released. They would soon learn to hide it, as she had. It appeared that achieving the First Level wasn’t difficult or slow. The Second Level, she knew, was harder.

A murmuring conversation began, in the liquid language of their homeland. Another novice entered the room—a Kyralian boy with dark circles under his eyes. Sitting down, he remained silent, rigidly staring at his desk.

There was something strange about this one. She could sense an aura of magic about him, too, but it pulsed erratically, sometimes strong, sometimes fading beyond detection. Not wanting to upset him any further by her staring, she looked away. Until the novices had achieved both First and Second Levels of Control, she might sense all kinds of strange things from them.

A laugh outside the doorway caught her attention before she could start reading again. This time five novices filed into the room, leaving only Regin missing. Without a figure of authority to watch them, the novices lounged around, sitting on their desks and talking in little groups. Her senses buzzed with their magical presences.

No one approached Sonea. She was both relieved and disappointed. They didn’t know what to expect from her, she reasoned, so they avoided her. She would have to make the first attempt to be friendly. If she didn’t, then they might decide she didn’t want to mix with them.

The pretty Elyne girl sat nearby, rubbing her temples. Remembering how Control lessons had given Rothen headaches, Sonea wondered if this girl might appreciate a little sympathy. Slowly, trying to look confident, she rose and moved across the room to the girl’s table.

“It isn’t easy, is it?” Sonea ventured.

The girl’s eyes lifted to hers in surprise, then she shrugged and looked back down at her table. When no reply came, Sonea began to suspect, with a growing sickness in her stomach, that the girl was ignoring her.

“I don’t like her,” the girl said suddenly, in a strong Elyne accent.

Sonea blinked in puzzlement. “Like who?”

“Lady Kinla,” the girl said irritably. She pronounced the name as “Keenlar.”

“The one teaching you Control? Hmmm, that would make it hard.”

“It’s not that Lady Kinla’s a bad person,” the girl sighed. “It’s just that I don’t want her in my mind. She’s so...” The girl’s red curls swayed as she shook her head.

The seat in front of the Elyne girl was empty. Sonea lowered herself into it and turned to face the girl.

“You don’t want her to see some things in your mind?” Sonea prompted. “Things that aren’t wrong or bad, but things you don’t want just any person seeing?”

“Yes, that’s it,” the girl looked up, her eyes wide and haunted, “but I have to let her see them, don’t I?”

Sonea frowned. “No, you don’t have to... well, I don’t know exactly what you want to keep from her, but... well... those things can be hidden.”

The girl was staring at Sonea now.

“How?

“You imagine a kind of doorway and put them behind it,” Sonea explained. “Lady Kinla will probably see what you’ve done but she won’t try to get to them just as Rothen didn’t try to get to mine.”

The girl’s eyes widened further still. “Lord Rothen taught you Control? He was in your mind?” she gasped.

“Yes.” Sonea nodded.

“But he’s a man.”

“Well... he taught me. Is that why you have a lady teacher? Do you have to be taught by a woman?”

“Of course.” The girl was staring at her in horror.

Sonea shook her head slowly. “I didn’t know. I don’t see how it would make any difference being taught by a male or female magician. Perhaps...” She frowned. “If I couldn’t have hidden away all my secret thoughts it would have been better to have a woman teach me.”

The girl had pulled away from Sonea a little. “It would be wrong for a girl of our age to share her mind with a man.”

Sonea shrugged. “It’s just minds. It’s like talking, but quicker. There’s nothing wrong with talking to a man, is there?”

“No...”

“You just don’t talk about certain things.” Sonea gave her a meaningful look.

A slow smile spread across the girl’s face. “No... except on special occasions, I suppose.”

“Issle.” A sharp voice cut across the noise in the room. Sonea looked up to see a middle-aged woman in green robes standing in the doorway.

“You’ve rested long enough. Come with me.”

“Yes, my lady,” the girl sighed.

“Good luck,” Sonea offered as the girl hurried away. She wasn’t sure if Issle had heard, as the girl disappeared through the door without a backward glance.

Sonea looked down at the book in her hands and allowed herself a small smile. It was a start. Perhaps, later, she would talk to Issle again.

Returning to her desk, she continued reading.

Projection:

Moving an object is quicker and easier if in sight. Moving an object outside of view may be done by extending the mind sense to locate it first. This takes more effort and time, however, and...

Bored, Sonea began to watch the novices coming and going. She listened for their names, and tried to guess what they were like. Shern, the Kyralian boy with the dark circles under his eyes, had winced when his teacher returned and called his name. He had looked up at the magician with haunted eyes, and reluctance had been expressed in every movement as he had pushed back his chair and shuffled over to the door.

Regin had befriended two boys, Kano and Vallon. The shy Kyralian girl listened to their conversation attentively, and the Elyne boy drew little pictures in a paper-covered book. When Issle returned she collapsed in her seat and buried her head in her arms. Sonea had heard the others complaining of headaches and decided to leave the girl alone.

When the gong chimed at midbreak, Sonea let out a quiet sigh of relief. All she had done was read lessons she already knew, constantly distracted by the coming and going of the other novices. It hadn’t been a particularly interesting first lesson.

Lord Elben strode into the room, causing the novices to scuttle hastily to their seats. He waited until they had settled, then cleared his throat.

“We will resume Control lessons at the same time tomorrow,” he told them. “Your next class will be Guild history, held in the second history room upstairs. You may leave now.”

Several sighs of relief could be heard around the class. The novices rose, bowed to the teacher and started for the door. Hanging back, Sonea noted that the Elyne boy had joined Regin’s group of new friends. She followed quietly, handing the teacher back his book as she passed, then lengthened her stride to catch up with Issle.

“Was it better the second time?”

The girl looked at Sonea, then nodded. “I did what you said. It didn’t work, but I think it might next time.”

“That’s good. Everything gets easier after that.”

They walked in silence for several paces. Sonea searched for something to say.

“You’re Issle of Fonden, aren’t you?” a voice observed.

Issle turned and stopped as Regin and the other two novices approached.

“Yes,” she said, smiling prettily.

“Whose father is adviser to King Marend?” Regin asked, his brows rising.

“That’s right.”

“I am Regin of Winar,” he bowed with exaggerated politeness, “of House Paren. Can I escort you to the Foodhall?”

Her smile broadened. “I’d be honored.”

“No.” Regin smiled silkily. “It is I who will be honored.”

He stepped forward between Sonea and Issle, forcing Sonea to move backward to avoid him, and took the girl’s arm. Regin’s companions fell in behind the pair as they continued down the corridor. None looked at Sonea, and she found herself at the back of the group. When they had descended the stairs of the University she stopped and watched them walk away without a backward glance.

Issle hadn’t even thanked her. I shouldn’t be surprised, she told herself. They’re rich brats with no manners.

No, she scolded herself. Don’t be unfair to them. If I’d been asked to accept one of them in Harrin’s gang, it wouldn’t have been easy. Eventually they’ll forget that I’m different. Just give them time.

3 Telling Tales

As Rothen’s servant, Tania, set out the morning meal on the table, Sonea dropped into a seat with a sigh. Rothen looked up and, seeing the resigned and unhappy expression on her face, wished that he had been able to return straight after class yesterday, instead of spending hours discussing lessons with Lord Peakin.

“How did it go yesterday?” he asked.

Sonea hesitated before answering. “None of the novices can use magic yet. They’re all still learning Control. Lord Elben gave me a book to read.”

“All novices are unable to use magic when they begin with us. We don’t develop their power until they have spoken the vow. I thought you would have realized this.” He smiled. “There are some advantages in having your power develop naturally.”

“But it will take weeks until they can start lessons. All I did was read the same book—and it was about things I already know.” She looked up, her eyes bright with hope. “Why don’t I stay here until they’ve caught up?”

Rothen suppressed a laugh. “We don’t hold a novice back if he or she is a faster learner than the others. You should make the most of the opportunity. Ask for another book to read, or see if your teacher is willing to go through some exercises with you.”

She grimaced. “I don’t think the other novices will like that.”

He pursed his lips. She was right, of course, but he also knew if he asked Jerrik to keep her out of classes until the others were ready, the Director would refuse.

“Novices are expected to compete with each other,” he told her. “Your classmates will always try to outdo you. It will make no difference if you hold yourself back for them. In fact, you will lose their respect if you sacrifice your learning for fear of upsetting them.”

Sonea nodded and looked down at the table. He felt a pang of sympathy for her. No matter how much he counselled her, it had to be confusing and frustrating to be suddenly confined to the small, petty world of the novices.

“You really haven’t had that much of a head start,” he told her. “It took me weeks to teach you Control because you had to learn to trust me. The fastest learners will be ready by the end of the week, the rest will take up to two. They’ll catch up sooner than you expect, Sonea.”

She nodded. Taking a spoonful of powder from a jar, she mixed it with hot water from a jug. The pungent smell of raka reached Rothen’s nose. He grimaced as she drank it, wondering how she could stomach the stimulant. He had persuaded her to try sumi, the drink popular in the Houses, but she had not acquired a taste for it.

Sonea drummed her fingernails against the side of the cup. “Issle said something strange, too. She said male teachers shouldn’t teach female novices.”

“Is this Issle an Elyne girl?”

“Yes.”

“Ah,” he sighed. “The Elynes. They’re fussier than Kyralians about the interaction of young girls with boys. They insist that their daughters are taught by women, and are so shocked if they see a girl of any race taught by a man that we’ve adopted this ‘rule’ for all female novices. Ironically, they’re quite open-minded about the activities of adults.”

“Shocked.” Sonea nodded. “Yes, that’s how she seemed.”

Rothen frowned. “It might have been wiser to let her assume I’d brought in a female teacher for you. Elynes can be very judgmental about things like that.”

“I wish you’d told me that before. She was friendly at first but...” Sonea shook her head.

“She’ll forget about it,” he assured her. “Give it time, Sonea. In a few weeks you’ll have a few companions, and you’ll be wondering why you were so worried.”

She looked down at her cup of raka. “I’d settle for just one.”


In the large, dimly lit office of the Guild Administrator a globe of magical light floated back and forth, sending shadows marching across the walls. As Lorlen reached the end of the letter he stopped pacing and muttered a curse.

“Twenty gold a bottle!”

Striding back to his chair, he sat down, opened a box and lifted out a sheet of thick paper. The decisive scratching of his pen filled the room as he wrote. He paused now and then, narrowing his eyes as he considered his words. Signing the letter with a flourish, he sat back and regarded his work.

Then, with a sigh, he dropped it into the waste box under his desk.

Suppliers of the Guild had been taking advantage of the King’s money for centuries. Any item was two or three times the usual price when the buyer was the Guild. It was one of the reasons the Guild grew its own medicinal plants.

Placing his elbows on the table, Lorlen rested his chin on his palm and reconsidered the price list in the letter from the wine maker. He could simply neglect to order any of the wine. It would have political consequences of course, but none that couldn’t be avoided if he purchased other goods from the same House.

But the wine was Akkarin’s favorite. Made from the tiniest variety of vare berries, it was sweet and rich in flavor. The High Lord always kept a flask in his guestroom, and he would not be pleased if supplies of it ran out.

Lorlen grimaced and reached for a new sheet of paper. Then he paused. He should not be pandering to Akkarin’s whims like this. It had never been his habit in the past. Akkarin might notice the change. He might wonder why Lorlen was acting so out of character.

But Akkarin must surely have noticed that Lorlen rarely dropped by for an evening chat these days. Lorlen frowned as he considered how long it had been since he had gathered the courage to visit the High Lord. Too long.

Sighing, he rested his forehead in his hands and closed his eyes. Ah, Sonea. Why did you have to reveal his secret to me? The memory ran through his mind. Sonea’s memory, not his own, but the details were still vivid...

“It is done,” Akkarin said, then removed his cloak to reveal bloodstained clothes. He looked down at himself. “Did you bring my robes?”

At the servant’s mumbled answer, Akkarin pulled off his beggar’s shirt. Beneath it was a leather belt strapped to his waist from which a dagger sheath hung. He scrubbed himself down, then moved out of sight and returned wearing his black robes. Reaching for the sheath, he removed a glittering dagger and began to wipe it on a towel. As he finished, he looked up at the servant.

“The fight has weakened me. I need your strength.”

The servant dropped to one knee and offered his arm. Akkarin ran the blade over the man’s skin, then placed a hand over the wound...

Lorlen shuddered. Opening his eyes, he drew in a deep breath and shook his head.

He wished he could dismiss Sonea’s memory as a misinterpretation of something innocent by someone who had believed magicians were bad and cruel, but memories that clear could not be false—and how could she have made it all up when she had not understood what she had seen? He almost smiled at her assumption that the black-robed magician was a secret Guild assassin. The truth was far worse and, no matter how much Lorlen wanted to, he could not ignore it.

Akkarin, his closest friend and High Lord of the Guild, was practicing black magic.

Lorlen had always felt a quiet pride that he belonged to, and now managed, the largest united alliance of magicians that had ever existed. Part of him was outraged that the High Lord, who should represent all that was respectable and good in the Guild, was dabbling in forbidden, evil magic. That part of him wanted to reveal the crime, to remove this potentially dangerous man from such a position of influence and authority.

But another part also recognized the danger of attempting to face the High Lord. It urged caution. Lorlen shuddered again as he recalled a day, many years before, when the trials had been held to select a new High Lord. In a test of strength, Akkarin had not only bested the most powerful magicians in the Guild but, in an exercise designed to find his limits, had easily withstood the combined strength of over twenty of the most powerful magicians.

Akkarin had not always been so strong. Lorlen, of all magicians, knew this well. They had been friends since their first day at the University. Over the years of their training they had fought many times in the Arena, and found their limits were similar. Akkarin’s powers had continued to grow, however, so that by the time he returned from his travels he had far surpassed any other magician.

Now Lorlen wondered if this growth had been natural. Akkarin’s journey had been a search for knowledge about magic from ancient times. He had spent five years travelling the Allied Lands, but when he returned, thin and despondent, he claimed the knowledge he had gathered had been lost during the final stage of the journey.

What if he had discovered something? What if he’d discovered black magic?

And then there was Takan, the man Sonea had seen assisting Akkarin in his underground room. Akkarin had adopted Takan as his servant during his travels, and had kept the man’s services after his homecoming. What was Takan’s role in this? Was he Akkarin’s victim or accomplice?

The thought that the servant might be an unwilling victim was distressing, but Lorlen could not question the man without revealing his own knowledge of Akkarin’s crime. It was too great a risk.

Lorlen massaged his temples. For months he had been thinking around in circles, trying to decide what to do. It was possible that Akkarin had simply dabbled in black magic out of curiosity. Little was known about it, and there were obviously ways of using it that did not involve killing. Takan was still alive and going about his duties. It would be a terrible betrayal of their friendship if Lorlen revealed Akkarin’s crime and caused him to be removed, or even executed, for what might be merely an experiment.

Then why had Akkarin been wearing bloodstained clothes when Sonea had seen him?

Lorlen grimaced. Something ugly had happened that night. “It is done,” Akkarin had said. A task fulfilled. But what—and why?

Perhaps there was a reasonable explanation. Lorlen sighed. Perhaps I just wish there was. Was his hesitation to act simply a reluctance to discover that his friend was guilty of terrible crimes, or a reluctance to see the man he had admired and trusted for so many years transform into a bloodthirsty monster?

In any case, he could not ask Akkarin. He had to find another way.

In the last few months he had compiled a mental list of information he needed. Why was Akkarin practicing black magic? How long had this been going on? What could Akkarin do with this black magic? How strong was he and how could he be defeated? Though Lorlen would be breaking a law by seeking information about black magic, the Guild needed to know the answers to these questions if it was to confront Akkarin.

He’d had little success finding information in the Magicians’ Library, but that came as no surprise. The Higher Magicians were taught enough about black magic to be able to recognize it; the rest of the Guild knew only that it was forbidden. Further information should not be easily found.

He needed to look further afield. Lorlen had immediately thought of the Great Library in Elyne, a store of knowledge even larger than that of the Guild’s. Then he remembered that the Great Library had been Akkarin’s first stop on his journey, and he began to wonder if he might find some answers by retracing his friend’s steps.

But he could not leave the Guild. His position as Administrator demanded constant attention, and any such journey would surely attract Akkarin’s curiosity. Which meant that another must go in his place.

Lorlen had carefully considered who might be trusted with such a task. It had to be someone sensible enough to hide the truth if necessary. It also needed to be someone adept at digging out secrets.

His choice had been surprisingly easy to make.

Lord Dannyl.


As the novices entered the Foodhall, Sonea trailed behind. Regin, Gennyl and Shern hadn’t returned to class at the end of the morning lesson, so Sonea had followed the rest. The hall was a large room containing several sets of tables and chairs. Servants constantly entered from a kitchen next to it, bringing trays laden with food for the novices to select from.

None of the other novices protested as Sonea dared to join them again. A few eyed her dubiously as she picked up her cutlery, but the rest ignored her.

As on the previous day, the conversation between the novices was awkward at first. Most were shy and unsure of each other. Then Alend told Kano that he had lived in Vin for a year and the others began asking questions about the country. The questions soon included other novices’ homes and families, then Alend looked at Sonea.

“So you grew up in the slums?”

All of the faces turned toward Sonea. She finished chewing and swallowed, conscious of their sudden attention.

“For about ten years,” she told them. “I lived with my aunt and uncle. We had a room in the North Quarter after that.”

“What about your parents?”

“Mother died when I was a child. Father...” she shrugged. “He went away.”

“And left you all alone in the slums? That’s awful!” Bina exclaimed.

“My aunt and uncle looked after me.” Sonea managed a smile. “And I had a lot of friends.”

“Do you see your friends now?” Issle asked.

Sonea shook her head. “Not much.”

“What about your thief-friend, the one Lord Fergun locked up under the University? Hasn’t he been back a few times?”

Sonea nodded. “Yes.”

“He’s one of the Thieves, isn’t he?” Issle asked.

Sonea hesitated. She could deny it, but would they believe her?

“I can’t say for sure. A lot can change in six months.”

“Were you a thief, too?”

“Me?” Sonea gave a soft laugh. “Not everyone who lives in the slums works for the Thieves.”

The others seemed to have relaxed a little. A few even nodded. Issle glanced around at them, then scowled.

“But you stole things, didn’t you?” she said. “You were one of those pickpockets at the Market.”

Sonea felt her face warm and knew her reaction had betrayed her. They would assume she was lying if she denied it. Perhaps the truth would gain their sympathy...

“Yes, I stole food and money when I was a child,” she admitted, forcing herself to lift her head and stare defiantly at Issle. “But only when I was starving, or when winter was coming and I needed shoes and warm clothes.”

Issle’s eyes brightened in triumph. “So you are a thief.”

“But she was a child, Issle,” Alend protested weakly. “You would steal, too, if you had nothing to eat.”

The others turned to frown at Issle, but she tossed her head dismissively, then leaned toward Sonea and fixed her with a cold stare.

“Tell me truthfully,” she challenged. “Have you ever killed anyone?”

Sonea returned Issle’s stare and felt anger growing. Perhaps if Issle knew the truth, the girl would hesitate before hassling her again.

“I don’t know.”

The others turned to stare at Sonea.

“What do you mean?” Issle sneered. “You either have or you haven’t.”

Sonea looked down at the table, then narrowed her eyes at the girl. “All right, since you just have to know. One night, about two years ago, I was grabbed by a man and pulled into an alley. He was... well, you can be sure he wasn’t about to ask for directions. When I got a hand free I stuck my knife into him and ran. I didn’t hang around, so I don’t know if he lived or not.”

They were silent for several minutes.

“You could have screamed,” Issle suggested.

“Do you really think anyone is going to risk their life to save some poor girl?” Sonea asked coldly. “The man might have cut my throat to shut me up, or I might have attracted more thugs.”

Bina shivered. “That’s awful.”

Sonea felt a spark of hope at the girl’s sympathy, but it fled at the next question.

“You carry a knife?”

Hearing the Lonmar accent, Sonea turned to meet Elayk’s green eyes. “Everyone does. For opening parcels, slicing fruit—”

“Cutting purse strings,” Issle injected.

Sonea gave the girl a level look. Issle stared back coldly. Obviously I wasted my time helping this one, Sonea thought.

“Sonea,” a voice suddenly called. “Look what I saved for you.”

The novices turned as a familiar figure strolled up to the table holding a plate. Regin grinned, then thrust the plate in front of Sonea. She flushed as she saw it was covered with bread crusts and food scraps.

“You’re such a generous, well-mannered boy, Regin.” She pushed the plate away. “Thank you, but I’ve eaten already.”

“But you must be hungry still,” he said in mock sympathy. “Look at you. You’re so small and skinny. You really look like you could do with a good meal or three. Didn’t your parents feed you properly?” He pushed the plate in front of her again.

Sonea pushed it back. “No, actually, they didn’t.”

“They’re dead,” someone offered.

“Well, why don’t you take it with you in case you get hungry later?” With a quick shove he pushed the plate over the edge of the table into her lap. Several titters escaped the novices as soggy food splashed over her robes and onto the floor, covering both with thick, brown sauce. Sonea cursed, forgetting Rothen’s careful instructions, and Issle made a small sound of disgust.

Looking up, she opened her mouth to speak, but at that instant the University gong began to ring.

“Oh, dear!” Regin exclaimed. “Time for class. Sorry we can’t stay to watch you eat, Sonea.” He turned to the others. “Come on, everybody. We don’t want to be late, do we?”

Regin swaggered away, the others following. Soon Sonea was the only novice left in the Foodhall. Sighing, she stood up, cradling the mess, and carefully pushed the food back onto the table. Looking down at the sticky brown sauce covering her robe, she cursed again, softly.

What was she going to do now? She couldn’t go to her next lesson with food stains all over her. The teacher would only send her back to her room to change, which would give Regin even more to gloat over. No, she would have to dash back to Rothen’s apartments first, and think of a more mundane excuse for her late arrival.

Hoping that she wouldn’t encounter too many people on the way, she set off in the direction of the Magicians’ Quarters.


As Dannyl heard sailors gathering in the common room at the end of the corridor, he smothered a groan. It was going to be another long night. Once again, Jano fetched Dannyl and the crew cheered as he joined them. A bottle appeared from somewhere, and they began taking mouthfuls of the potent-smelling Vindo liquor, siyo. As it reached him, Dannyl passed it straight to Jano, earning mocking disappointment from the sailors.

Once all had taken a drink, the sailors began to argue good-naturedly in their clipped native tongue. When they finally came to an agreement, they began to sing, urging Dannyl to join in. He had given in previously, but this time he fixed Jano with a stern stare.

“You promised to translate for me.”

The man grinned. “You not like song.”

“Let me decide that.”

Jano hesitated as he listened to the singing. “In Capia my lover has red, red hair... and breasts like sacks of tenn. In Tol-Gan my lover has strong, strong legs... and she wraps them both around me. In Kiko my lover has... ah,” Jano shrugged. “I do not know your word for that.”

“I can guess,” Dannyl replied, shaking his head sadly. “Enough translation. I don’t think I want to know what I’m singing.”

Jano laughed. “Now you tell me why you not drink siyo, yai?”

“Siyo smells strong. Potent.”

“Siyo is potent!” Jano said proudly.

“It’s not a good idea to get a magician very drunk,” Dannyl told him.

“Why not?”

Dannyl pursed his lips, trying to think how to explain it in terms the Vindo would understand.

“When you are drunk—very drunk—you say and do things badly, or without meaning to, yai?”

Jano shrugged and patted Dannyl’s shoulder. “No worry. We not tell anybody.”

Dannyl smiled and shook his head. “It’s not a good thing to do magic badly, or without meaning to. It can be dangerous.”

Jano frowned, then his eyes widened slightly. “We give you little bit of siyo, then.”

Dannyl laughed. “Very well.”

Waving his hands, Jano signalled for the sailors to pass the bottle to him. He wiped the mouth of it with his sleeve, then offered it to Dannyl.

Finding himself being watched intently by the others, Dannyl brought the bottle to his lips and sipped. A pleasantly nutty flavor filled his mouth, then a warmth seared his throat as he swallowed. He sucked in a breath, then exhaled slowly, appreciating the spread of warmth through his body. The sailors cheered as he smiled and nodded approvingly.

Jano handed the bottle back to the others, then patted Dannyl on the shoulder. “Me glad I not magician. To like drink but not be able to.” He shook his head. “Very sad.”

Dannyl shrugged. “I like magic, too.”

The sailors broke into a new song and, without Dannyl asking, Jano translated. Dannyl found himself laughing at the absurd crudity of the lyrics.

“What does eyoma mean?”

“Sea leech,” Jano replied. “Bad, bad thing. I tell you story.”

At once the others quietened, all watching Jano and Dannyl with bright eyes.

“Sea leech is about size of arm from hand to bend.” Jano lifted his arm to demonstrate, pointing at his elbow. “It swims in small groups most of time, but when breeding many sea leech come together, and very, very dangerous. Climb side of ship thinking it is rock, and sailors must kill, kill, kill or eyoma stick on them and suck out blood.”

Dannyl looked at the other sailors, and they nodded eagerly. At once he began to suspect that this tale might be false or an exaggeration—a scary story that seamen told travellers. He narrowed his eyes at Jano, but the man was too engrossed in his tale to notice.

“Sea leech suck blood from all big fish in water. If ship sinks, men try to swim to shore, but if sea leech find them, they quick be tired and die. If men fall in water while breeding season, they drown from heaviness of many sea leeches.” He looked at Dannyl, his eyes wide. “Nasty way to die.”

Despite his skepticism, Dannyl felt a chill at the man’s description. Jano patted his arm again.

“You no worry. Sea leech live in warm water. Up north. Have little more siyo. Forget story.”

Dannyl accepted the bottle and sipped modestly. One of the sailors began to hum, and soon all were singing heartily. Dannyl let them bully him into singing along, but stopped as the door to the deck opened and the captain stepped inside.

As the captain descended, the crew sang a little more quietly, but did not stop. Numo nodded to Dannyl. “I have something to give you, my lord.”

He gestured for Dannyl to follow him, then started down the corridor toward his room. Rising, Dannyl braced himself against the swaying of the boat with a hand on either wall. As he reached Numo’s door he found himself entering a room that was, contrary to Jano’s claim, at least four times the size of Dannyl’s.

Charts were spread across a table in the center of the room. Numo had opened a small cupboard and was holding a box. Drawing a key out from under his shirt, he opened the lid and took out a folded piece of paper.

“Asked to give this to you before we arrive in Capia.”

Numo handed Dannyl the paper, then gestured to a chair. Sitting down, Dannyl examined the seal. It was stamped with the Guild symbol, and the paper was of the finest quality.

Breaking the seal, he unfolded the paper and instantly recognized Administrator Lorlen’s handwriting.

To Second Guild Ambassador to Elyne, Dannyl, of family Vorin, House Tellen.

You must forgive me for arranging for the delivery of this letter to take place after your journey had begun. I have a task I wish you to complete for me, in addition to your duties as Ambassador. This task must remain confidential, at least for now, and this method of delivery is a small precaution to that effect.

As you know, High Lord Akkarin left Kyralia over ten years ago to gather knowledge of ancient magic, a quest that was not completed. Your task is to retrace his steps, to revisit all the places he visited and find out who helped him in his search as well as to collect information on the subject.

Please forward all information to me by courier. Do not communicate with me directly. I look forward to hearing from you.

With thanks, Administrator Lorlen.

Dannyl read the letter several times, then folded it again. What was Lorlen up to? Retracing Akkarin’s journey? Communication only by courier?

He opened the letter once more and scanned it quickly. Lorlen might be asking for secrecy simply because he didn’t want it known that he was taking advantage of Dannyl’s ambassadorial position to deal with a private matter.

That private matter, however, was Akkarin’s quest. Did the High Lord know that Lorlen was reviving the search for ancient knowledge?

He considered the possible answers to that question. If Akkarin knew, then presumably he approved. If he didn’t know? Dannyl smiled wryly. Perhaps there was something akin to a sea leech in Akkarin’s stories, and Lorlen wanted to know if it was true.

Or perhaps Lorlen wanted to succeed where his friend had failed. The pair had competed with each other as novices. Lorlen obviously could not resume the search himself, so he had recruited another magician to act on his behalf. Dannyl smiled. And he has chosen me.

Folding the letter again, he rose and braced himself against the rocking of the ship. No doubt Lorlen would reveal his reasons for secrecy eventually. In the meantime, Dannyl knew he would enjoy having permission to snoop into someone’s past, particularly someone as mysterious as the High Lord.

Nodding to Numo, he left the room, stowed the letter among his belongings, and returned to Jano and the singing crew.

4 Attending to Duty

As Sonea wandered slowly down the corridor of the University, she felt a wry relief. Tomorrow was Freeday, which meant she had no lessons to attend, and for a whole day she would be free of Regin and the other novices.

She was surprised at how tired she felt, considering how little she’d done in the past week. For most of the lessons she read books or watched the novices coming and going from their Control lessons. Not much had happened, yet she felt as though weeks—no, months—had passed.

Issle no longer acknowledged Sonea’s presence at all, and, while this was better than open hostility, it seemed all of the novices had decided this was the best way to treat her, too. None of them would speak to her, even if she asked a sensible question about their lessons.

She considered each of the novices. Elayk was everything she had been told to expect of a typical Lonmar male. Brought up in a world where women were hidden away, living a life of luxury but little freedom, he was unused to talking to them, and treated Bina and Issle with the same cold indifference. Faren, the Thief who had hidden her from the Guild last year, had been nothing like this, but then Faren was definitely not a typical Lonmar!

While Gennyl’s father was Lonmar, his mother was Kyralian and he appeared to be comfortable around Bina and Issle. He ignored Sonea, but a few times she had noticed him watching her with narrowed eyes.

Shern rarely spoke to any of the other novices, spending most of his time staring into the distance. Sonea was still conscious of his strange magical presence, but it no longer pulsed erratically.

Bina was quiet, and Sonea suspected the girl was simply too shy and awkward to join in any conversations. When Sonea had tried to approach her, the girl had recoiled, saying: “I’m not allowed to talk to you.” Remembering the comments the girl’s mother had made before the Acceptance Ceremony, Sonea was not surprised.

Kano, Alend and Vallon behaved like boys half their age, finding the most childish things amusing and boasting about their possessions and luck with girls. Having heard this sort of banter among the boys of Harrin’s gang, Sonea knew the stories about the latter had to be invented. What kept her amused was that the boys she had known would have had enough experience by this age to have stopped bragging about it years ago.

Regin dominated all social activity. Sonea noted how he controlled the others with compliments, jokes, and an authoritative-sounding comment here and there; how they would all nod whenever he expressed an opinion. This had been amusing until he had started making snide comments about Sonea’s past at every opportunity. Even Alend, who had shown some sympathy for Sonea at first, laughed at these jibes. And after she had made her failed attempt to engage Bina in conversation, Regin had been at the girl’s side a moment later, all charm and friendliness.

“Sonea!”

The breathless voice came from behind her. She turned to find Alend hurrying toward her.

“Yes?”

“It’s your turn tonight,” he panted.

“My turn?” She frowned. “For what?”

“Kitchen duty.” He stared at her. “Didn’t they tell you?”

“No...”

He grimaced. “Of course. Regin has the roster. We all have to do kitchen duty one night a week. It’s your turn.”

“Oh.”

“You’d better hurry,” he warned. “You don’t want to be late.”

“Thanks,” Sonea offered. He shrugged and strode away.

Kitchen duty. Sonea sighed. It had been stiflingly hot all day, and she had been looking forward to a cool bath before the evening meal. Chores given to novices weren’t likely to be distasteful or time-consuming, however, so she might still have time.

Hurrying down the spiral stairs to the ground floor, she let the smell of cooking guide her to the Foodhall. Inside, the room was busy and seats were filling quickly as more novices arrived. She followed one of the tray-carrying servants into the kitchen and found herself in a large room lined with long benches. Steam curled up from boiling tubs, meat sizzled on grills, and the air was filled with the clatter of metal on metal. Servants hurried about, calling to each other over the noise.

Sonea stopped inside the door, overwhelmed by the chaos and the aromas. A young woman looked up from stirring a pot. She stared at Sonea, then turned and called out to another, older woman wearing a large white shirt. As the older woman saw Sonea, she left her pot, approached Sonea and bowed.

“How may I help you, my lady?”

“Kitchen duty,” Sonea shrugged. “They tell me I have to help out.”

The woman stared at her. “Kitchen duty?”

“Yes.” Sonea smiled. “Well, here I am. Where do I start?”

“Novices never come in here,” the woman told her. “There’s no kitchen duty.”

“But—” The words died in Sonea’s throat. She scowled as she realized she’d been tricked. As if the sons and daughters of the Houses would ever be expected to work in a kitchen! The woman eyed Sonea warily.

“I’m sorry to have bothered you,” Sonea sighed. “I think I’ve just fallen for a joke.”

An explosive giggle broke through the noise. The woman looked around Sonea’s shoulder and her eyebrows rose. Sonea turned, a sick feeling growing inside. Filling the doorway were five familiar faces, their mouths stretched into ugly grins. As Sonea looked at them, the novices burst into uncontrolled laughter.

The noise in the kitchen subsided, and she realized that several of the servants had paused to see what was happening. Heat rushed to her face. She gritted her teeth and stepped toward the door.

“Oh, no. You’re not leaving,” Regin declared. “You can stay in here with the servants, where you belong. But, now I consider it, that’s not right. Even servants are better than slum dwellers.” He turned to the kitchen woman. “I’d watch out if I were you. She’s a thief—and she’ll admit it if you ask. I’d watch she doesn’t sneak off with one of your knives, then stab you in the back when you’re not looking.”

With that he reached for the door handle and pulled it closed. Sonea strode over and twisted the handle, but while it turned easily, the door would not open. A faint vibration stirred the air about her hand.

Magic? How could they be using magic? None of them had passed the Second Level yet.

Behind the door she could hear giggles and muffled comments. She recognized Alend’s voice, and Issle’s laugh was unmistakable. As she noted Vallon and Kano’s laughter, she realized that the only voice she wasn’t hearing was Regin’s.

Which was probably because he was concentrating hard on holding the door closed with magic. Her heart sank as she realized what this meant. Regin had already mastered the Second Level and more. He could not only access and draw on his power, but had learned how to use it. Rothen had warned her that some novices might achieve this quickly, but why did it have to be Regin?

Remembering the months she had spent playing and practicing magic, she smiled grimly. He still had a long way to go. She stepped back and regarded the door. Could she combat his magic? Probably, but she might destroy the door. She turned to the kitchen woman.

“There must be another way out of here. Would you show me out?”

The woman hesitated. Her expression held no sympathy anymore, just suspicion. The sick feeling inside Sonea turned into anger.

“Well?” she snapped.

The woman’s eyes widened, then her gaze dropped to the floor.

“Yes, my lady. Follow me.”

Gesturing for Sonea to follow, the woman wove her way through the benches. The kitchen servants stared at Sonea as she passed, but she kept her eyes on the woman’s back. They entered a storeroom even larger than the kitchen, filled with shelves stacked high with food and utensils. At the far end of the storeroom, the woman stopped at another door, opened it and gestured wordlessly at the corridor beyond.

“Thank you,” Sonea said, then stepped out of the room. The door closed firmly behind her. She looked up and down the corridor. It was unfamiliar, but it had to lead somewhere. She sighed, shook her head and started walking.


Evenings in the Night Room were not as interesting as they used to be, Rothen mused. Where once he had half dreaded attending the weekly social gathering for the rush of questions he was subjected to about the mysterious slum girl, now he found himself ignored.

“That Elyne girl will need watching,” a female voice said from across the room. “From what Lady Kinla said, it won’t be long before she needs a private talk with a Healer.”

The reply was inaudible.

“Bina? Perhaps. Or do you mean...? No. Who would want to? Leave it to Rothen.”

Hearing his name, Rothen searched for the speakers. He found two young Healer women standing by a window nearby. One glanced up and, seeing him watching, blushed and looked away.

“There’s something strange about her. It’s something...” Recognizing this new voice, Rothen felt a thrill of triumph. The speaker was Lord Elben, one of Sonea’s teachers. Louder, closer conversations in the room threatened to overwhelm the voice, but Rothen closed his eyes and concentrated as Dannyl had taught him to.

“She doesn’t fit in,” a wavering voice replied. “But who really expected her to?”

Rothen frowned. The second speaker was the history teacher for the First Year novices.

“It’s more than that, Skoran,” Elben insisted. “She’s too quiet. She doesn’t even talk to the other novices.”

“They don’t like her much, either, do they?”

A wry laugh. “No, who can blame them?”

“Think of Lord Rothen,” Skoran said. “The poor man. Do you think he knew what he was getting into? I wouldn’t want her coming back to my rooms every night. Garrel was telling me that she spun some tale about knifing a man when she lived in the slums. I wouldn’t want a little murderess lurking around my rooms while I was asleep.”

“Charming! I hope Rothen keeps his door locked during the night, in that case.”

The voices faded as the pair moved away. Rothen opened his eyes again and looked down at his glass of wine. Dannyl had been right. This chair was in a good position for listening to other magicians’ conversations. Dannyl had always said that the regular Night Room attendees were too eager to express their opinions to check who might be listening, and much could be learned from them.

Unlike Dannyl, however, Rothen felt uncomfortable spying on his fellow magicians. He rose and located Skoran and Elben. Forcing a polite smile, he approached the pair.

“Good evening, Lord Elben,” he said, inclining his head in greeting. “Lord Skoran.”

“Lord Rothen,” they replied, nodding politely in return.

“I just came to ask how my little thief is going?”

The two teachers paused, their faces blank with surprise, then Elben laughed nervously.

“She’s doing well,” he said. “In fact she’s doing rather better than I expected. She learns fast and her control over her powers is quite... advanced.”

“She had many months in which to practice, and we haven’t really tested her strength yet,” Skoran added.

Rothen smiled. Few had believed him when he had described how strong Sonea was, despite knowing that a magician had to be strong for their powers to surface of their own accord.

“I look forward to hearing your opinion when you do test her,” he said, stepping away.

“Before you go,” Skoran lifted a wrinkled hand, “I’d like to know how well my grandson, Urlan, is progressing in chemistry.”

“Well enough.” Rothen turned back to face the magician. As he was drawn into a discussion about the boy, he made a mental note to ask Sonea how well the teachers had been treating her. Not liking a novice was never a good excuse for neglecting their training.


Pausing at the bottom of the University stairs, Administrator Lorlen regarded the night-shrouded Guild. To his right lay the Healers’ Quarters, a round two-story building standing behind tall trees within the gardens. Before it ran the road to the Servants’ Quarters, winding into a dark arm of the forest that surrounded the grounds. Directly before him lay a wide, circular road that curved between the University and the gates. Stables lay to the left of this, and then another arm of the forest.

Lurking between the edge of this forest and the other side of the gardens was the High Lord’s Residence. The gray stone building did not glow in the moonlight like the other, white Guild structures, but was a ghostly presence at the forest edge. It was the only building other than the Guildhall that had survived from the beginnings of the Guild’s formation. For over seven centuries it had accommodated the most powerful magician of each generation. Lorlen had no doubt that the man living there now was one of the strongest magicians it had ever housed.

Taking a deep breath, he started down the path to its door.

For now, forget all that, he told himself. He is your old friend, the Akkarin you know well. We will talk about politics, our families, and Guild matters. You’ll try to persuade him to visit the Night Room, and he’ll decline.

Lorlen straightened his shoulders as he reached the residence. As always, the door opened at his knock. Stepping inside, Lorlen felt a twinge of relief as neither Akkarin nor his servant stepped forward to greet him.

He sat down and considered the guestroom. Originally, it had been an entry hall with a well-worn staircase on either side. Guestrooms had become a common feature of homes centuries after the time of the residence’s construction, so previous High Lords had entertained in one of the inner rooms instead. Akkarin had modernized the building by arranging for walls to be constructed to conceal the two staircases. By filling the space between them with comfortable furniture and warm carpets, he’d created a pleasant, if narrow, guestroom.

“What’s this?” a familiar voice said. “An unexpected visitor.”

Turning, Lorlen managed to smile at the black-robed man standing in the doorway to the stairs.

“Good evening, Akkarin.”

The High Lord smiled and, after closing the door behind him, moved to a narrow cabinet holding a store of wine and a selection of glasses and silverware. He opened a bottle and filled two glasses, choosing the very wine that Lorlen had decided not to buy the previous day.

“I almost didn’t recognize you, Lorlen. It has been a while.”

Lorlen lifted his shoulders. “Our little family has been a handful of late.”

Akkarin chuckled at Lorlen’s use of their pet name for the Guild. He handed Lorlen a wineglass, then sat down. “Ah, but they keep you occupied, and you get to reward them for good behavior now and then. Lord Dannyl was an interesting choice for the Second Guild Ambassador for Elyne.”

Lorlen felt his heart skip a beat. He masked his alarm with a frown of concern. “Not one you would have made?”

“He is an excellent man for the role. He showed initiative and boldness by seeking and negotiating with the Thieves.”

Lorlen lifted an eyebrow. “He should have consulted us first, however.”

Akkarin waved a hand dismissively. “The Higher Magicians would have argued about it for weeks, then made the safest decision—and they would have made the wrong one. That Dannyl could see that, and risked the disapproval of his peers for the sake of finding her, shows that he is not easily cowed by authority when its methods are contrary to the good of others. He will need that confidence when dealing with the Elyne court. I was surprised you didn’t ask my opinion, but I’m sure you knew that I’d approve of your decision.”

“What news do you have for me?” Lorlen asked.

“Nothing exciting. The King asked me if the ‘little rogue,’ as he calls Sonea, had been included in the summer intake. I told him she had, and he was pleased. That reminds me of another amusing incident: Nefin of House Maron asked if Fergun could come back to Imardin now.”

“Again?”

“This is the first time Nefin has asked. The last one to ask was Ganen, about three weeks ago. It seems every man and woman in House Maron intends to approach me about this. I’ve even had children ask me when they’ll see uncle Fergun again.”

“So what did you tell him?”

“That uncle Fergun had done a bad, bad thing, but not to worry, as the nice men at the Fort would make sure he was well looked after for all the years he stayed there.”

Lorlen laughed. “I meant, what did you tell Nefin?”

“Precisely the same. Well, not in exactly the same words, of course.” Akkarin sighed and smoothed his hair. “Not only do they give me the satisfaction of refusing, but I’ve had no marriage proposals from House Maron since Fergun departed. That is an even better reason to keep the man tucked away in the Fort.”

Lorlen took a sip of wine. He had always assumed Akkarin was uninterested in the frivolous women of the Houses, and would eventually find a wife among the women of the Guild. But now he wondered if Akkarin had resolved to remain a bachelor to protect his dark secret.

“Both House Arran and House Korin have asked if we can spare Healers to tend their racehorses,” Akkarin said.

Lorlen gave a sigh of exasperation. “You told them we can’t, of course?”

Akkarin shrugged. “I told them I’d think about it. There may be a way we can turn such a request to our advantage.”

“But we need every Healer we have.”

“True, but both Houses are inclined to hoard their daughters, as if they, too, were more valuable for breeding than anything else. If they could be persuaded to let the girls who have talent join us, we would eventually have more than enough Healers to replace those who leave to tend the horses.”

“In the meantime, we have fewer Healers and must expend more of our existing Healers’ time training the new girls,” Lorlen argued. “And those girls might not choose to become Healers when they graduate.”

Akkarin nodded. “Then it is a question of balance. We must gain enough girls to ensure we eventually make up for the Healers we send to tend the horses. Ultimately, we’ll have more Healers to call upon if there should be a disaster, such as a fire or riot.” Akkarin tapped the arm of his chair with his long fingers. “There is another advantage. Lord Tepo spoke to me a few months ago about wishing to expand our knowledge of animal healing. He spoke quite persuasively. This might be a means for him to start his studies in the field.”

Lorlen shook his head. “It sounds like a waste of Healers’ time to me.”

Akkarin frowned. “I will discuss both ideas with Lady Vinara.” He looked up at Lorlen. “Do you have any news for me?”

“I do,” Lorlen said. He leaned back in his chair and sighed. “Terrible news. News that will disturb many in the Guild, but will affect you personally most of all.”

“Oh?” Akkarin’s gaze sharpened.

“Do you have any more of that wine you’re drinking?”

“It is the last bottle.”

“Oh dear.” Lorlen shook his head. “Then the situation is worse than I thought. I’m afraid that’s the last of it. I chose not to renew our supplies. After today, no more Anuren dark for the High Lord.”

“That’s your news?”

“Terrible, isn’t it?” Lorlen turned to regard his friend. “Are you displeased?”

Akkarin snorted. “Of course! Why didn’t you order any more?”

“They wanted twenty gold a bottle.”

“A bottle!” Akkarin leaned back in his chair and whistled. “Another good decision, though this time you should have mentioned it to me first. I could have said a few words here and there in court... well, I still can.”

“So I’ll expect a more reasonable offer to arrive on my desk in the next few weeks?”

Akkarin smiled. “I’ll see what I can do.”

They sat in silence for a moment, then Lorlen drained his glass and rose. “I should move on to the Night Room. Are you coming?”

Akkarin’s expression darkened. “No, I have someone to meet in the city.” He looked up at Lorlen. “It was good to see you again. Come by more often. I don’t want to have to arrange meetings with you just to find out Guild gossip.”

“I’ll try.” Lorlen managed a smile. “Perhaps you should visit the Night Room more often. You might hear some gossip yourself.”

The High Lord shook his head. “They’re all too careful when I am around. Besides, my interests lie outside the confines of the Guild. I’ll leave our family scandals to you.”

Placing his wineglass on the table, Lorlen moved to the door, which opened silently. He glanced back to see Akkarin sipping wine contentedly.

“Good night,” he said.

Akkarin lifted his glass in reply. “Enjoy yourself.”

As the door closed behind him, Lorlen drew in a deep breath, then started walking. Thinking back, he reviewed what had been said. Akkarin had expressed only approval of Dannyl’s appointment—which was ironic, considering. The rest of the conversation had been relaxed and unremarkable; it was easy to forget the truth at those times. But Lorlen was always amazed how Akkarin managed to allude to his secret activities during their conversations. “My interests lie outside the confines of the Guild.” That was putting it mildly.

Lorlen snorted softly. No doubt Akkarin was referring to attending court and the King. I just can’t help interpreting what he says in light of what I know.

Visiting Akkarin had never been a trial before Sonea’s Hearing. Now he left the High Lord’s Residence tired and relieved the ordeal was over. He thought of his bed and shook his head. He still had to sit through endless requests and questions in the Night Room before he could slip away to his rooms. Sighing, he lengthened his stride and started through the gardens.

5 Useful Skills

As Sonea waited for the class to begin, she opened her book of notes and started to read. A shadow crossed her desk, and she jumped as a hand flashed in front of her and grabbed one of the sheets of paper. She made a desperate grab for it, but was too slow. The paper was whisked away.

“Well, what do we have here?” Regin strolled to the front of the class and leaned back on the teacher’s desk. “Sonea’s notes.”

She stared at him coldly. The other novices were watching him with interest. Regin scanned the page and laughed with delight.

“Look at this writing!” he exclaimed, holding it up. “She writes like a child. Oh, and the spelling!”

Sonea stifled a groan as he started to read, and made a great show of his “struggle” to decipher words. After a few sentences, he stopped and puzzled aloud over their meaning. She heard several half-smothered laughs and felt her face beginning to burn. Regin grinned and began exaggerating the spelling mistakes on the page by pronouncing each word literally, and the room began to echo with unrestrained laughter.

Placing an elbow on the table before her, Sonea rested her chin in her hand and tried to look unconcerned, while her entire body turned hot, then cold, over and over, as anger and humiliation overtook each other.

Regin straightened suddenly and hurried back to his seat. As the laughter faded, the sound of footsteps could be heard. A purple-robed figure appeared in the doorway. Lord Elben peered down his long nose at the class, then moved to his seat and placed a wooden box on the table.

“Fire,” he began, “is like a living creature and, like a living creature, it has needs.”

He opened the box and lifted out a candle and a small dish. With a quick stab, he speared the candle onto a spike in the center of the dish.

“Fire needs air and food, just as all creatures do. Don’t assume that it is a creature.” He chuckled. “That is foolish, but do keep in mind that it often behaves as though it has a mind of its own.”

Behind her someone choked back a laugh. Sonea turned her head. In the corner of her eye she saw Kano pass something to Vallon, and her stomach turned. Unseen by Lord Elben, her handwriting was entertaining the entire class.

Slowly, she drew in a deep breath and sighed quietly. The second week of lessons showed no improvement on the first. All of the novices—except Shern, who had disappeared completely after a strange outburst in which he claimed to have been seeing sunlight coming through the ceiling—now gathered around Regin at every opportunity. It was clear that she was not welcome in this little gang, and that Regin intended to make her the butt of all his jokes and pranks.

She was the outcast. But unlike the boys who had tried and failed to be accepted in Harrin’s gang, she could not find somewhere else to go. She was stuck with them.

So she had adopted the only defense she could think of: ignoring them. If she didn’t entertain Regin and the others by reacting to their jibes, they would eventually grow bored and leave her alone.

“Sonea.”

She jumped and found Lord Elben frowning at her in disapproval. Her heart began to pound. Had he spoken to her? Had she been so engrossed in self-pity that she hadn’t heard him? Would he chastise her in front of the class?

“Yes, Lord Elben?” she said, bracing herself for further humiliation.

“You will make the first attempt to light this candle,” he said. “Now, I’ll remind you that the production of heat is easier when...”

Relieved, Sonea focused her will on the candle. She could almost hear Rothen’s voice as his instructions repeated in her mind. “Draw a little magic, extend your will, focus your mind on the wick, shape the magic, and release it...” She felt a sliver of her power jump to the wick and a flame spluttered into life.

Lord Elben blinked at it, his mouth still open. “...thank you, Sonea,” he finished. He looked around the rest of the class. “I have candles for you all. Your task this morning is to learn how to light them, then practice lighting them quickly, with as little thought as possible.”

He gathered candles from the box and set them in front of each novice. At once they began to stare at the wicks. Sonea watched, her amusement growing as she saw that no candle, not even Regin’s, began to burn.

Elben returned to his desk and took out a sphere of glass filled with blue liquid. He brought it to Sonea’s table and set it down.

“This is an exercise that will teach you subtlety,” he told her. “The substance in this container is sensitive to temperature. If you heat it slowly and evenly, it will change to red. If you do not, bubbles will form, and it will take several minutes for them to dissipate. I want to see red, not bubbles. Call me when you have achieved that.”

Nodding, Sonea waited until he had moved back to his desk, then concentrated on the sphere. Unlike lighting a candle, this needed only a warming energy. Drawing in a deep breath, she shaped some magic into a gentle mist so that it would heat the glass evenly. As she released it, the liquid darkened to a deep red.

Satisfied, she looked up and found Elben in discussion with Regin.

“I don’t understand,” the boy was saying.

“Try again,” Elben said.

Regin stared at the candle in his hand, his eyes narrowing to slits.

“Lord Elben?” Sonea ventured. The teacher straightened and began to turn toward her.

“So it’s like focusing magic into the wick?” Regin asked, drawing Elben’s attention back to him.

“Yes,” Elben said, a note of impatience entering his voice. As Regin stared at his candle again, the teacher turned to look at Sonea’s sphere. He shook his head.

“Not hot enough.”

Looking down at the sphere, Sonea saw that the liquid was cooling to a purple. Frowning, she focused her will on it again, and the purple brightened to red again.

Regin jumped in his seat, and uttered a bark of surprise and pain. His candle was gone, and his hands were coated with molten wax, which he was frantically trying to peel off. Sonea felt a smile pulling at her lips, and covered her mouth with her hand.

“Are you scalded?” Elben asked, concerned. “You can go to the Healers if you wish.”

“No,” Regin said quickly. “I’m fine.”

Elben’s brows rose. He shrugged, then collected another candle and set it on Regin’s desk. “Back to work,” he snapped at the rest of the class, who were staring at Regin’s reddened hands.

Elben moved to Sonea’s desk, then looked down at the sphere and nodded.

“Go on,” he said. “Show me.”

Once again, Sonea concentrated on the sphere, and the liquid warmed. Elben nodded, satisfied. “Good. I have another exercise for you.” As he returned to the box, she saw Regin watching her. A smile pulled at her lips again, and she saw his hands clench. Then Elben rapped on the boy’s table as he passed.

“Back to work, all of you.”


Leaning back on the deck railing, Dannyl breathed in the salty air with relish.

“Sick belly not so bad outside, yai?”

He turned to find Jano approaching, the little man walking along the rocking deck with ease. As Jano reached the railing, he turned and braced his back against it.

“Magicians not get sick on boats,” Jano observed.

“We do,” Dannyl admitted. “But we can Heal it away. It takes concentration, though, and we can’t keep our minds on it all the time.”

“So... you not feel sick when you think about not feeling sick, but you not be able to think about not feeling sick always?”

Dannyl smiled. “Yes, that’s right.”

Jano nodded. From high on the mast, one of the crew rang a bell and called out a few words in the Vindo tongue.

“Did he say Capia?” Dannyl asked, turning to look up.

“Capia, yai!” Jano swung around and stared into the distance, then pointed. “See?”

Dannyl gazed in the direction his companion was pointing, but could see nothing but a spray-clouded line of nondescript coast. He shook his head.

“You have better eyes than me,” he said.

“Vindo have good eyes,” Jano agreed proudly. “Why we are sea-riders.”

“Jano!” a stern voice bellowed.

“Must go.”

Dannyl watched the Vindo sailor hurry away, then turned to regard the coast again. Still unable to see the capital of Elyne, he looked down and watched the bow cutting through the waves, then let his gaze wander over the surface of the water. Throughout the voyage he had found the constant ripple of the water soothing and quite hypnotic, and had been fascinated by the way it changed color depending on the time of day, and the weather.

When he looked up again the land was closer, and he could see rows of tiny pale squares above the shore—distant buildings. A shiver ran over his skin, and he felt his heartbeat quicken. He drummed his fingers on the railing as he watched the coast drawing closer.

A large gap between the buildings proved to be the entrance to a bay, well protected from the pounding waves of the sea. The houses were sprawling mansions, surrounded by walled gardens that descended in levels to a white beach. All were constructed of a pale yellow stone that glowed warmly in the morning light. As the ship drew level with the bay entrance, Dannyl caught his breath. The houses on either side formed the arms of a city that embraced the entire bay. Within, he could see grander buildings rising above a high sea wall. Domes swelled behind them and towers rose toward the sky, some linked by great stone archways.

“The captain want you to stand by him, my lord.”

Dannyl nodded at the crewman who had addressed him, then made his way along the deck, to where the captain was standing by a large wheel. The sailors were hurrying about, checking ropes and tossing Vindo words to each other.

“You asked for me, captain?”

The man nodded. “Just want you to stand here, out of way, my lord.”

Positioning himself where Numo had pointed, Dannyl watched as the man stared alternately at the coast, then the sea. Then Numo bellowed an order in his native tongue and began turning the wheel. At once the crew leapt into action. Ropes were pulled. The sails swung about, falling limp as they no longer caught the wind. The ship rocked and tilted as it turned toward the coast.

Then the sails billowed and snapped, filling with wind again. The crew bound ropes into new positions, called confirmations to each other, and settled down to wait.

When they had sailed considerably closer to the coast, the scene was repeated again. This time the ship took them through the entrance of the bay. The captain turned to regard Dannyl.

“You been to Capia before, my lord?”

Dannyl shook his head. “No.”

Numo turned and nodded at the city. “Pretty.”

Simple facades of arches and columns were visible now. Unlike the mansions of Kyralia, few of the buildings bore elaborate decoration, though some towers and domes were sculpted into subtle spiral or fan-like patterns.

“Better when sun sets,” Numo told him. “You hire boat one night and see it.”

“I will,” Dannyl replied quietly. “I definitely will.”

The captain’s mouth twitched into the closest expression of a smile that Dannyl had seen so far. It vanished quickly as the man began shouting orders again. Sails were rolled at their base to make them smaller. The ship slowed, drifting toward a gap between the thousands of watercraft that were anchored in the bay. Ahead, several ships were moored at the high sea wall.

“You get things from room now,” Numo said, glancing over his shoulder at Dannyl. “We arrive soon, my lord. Send man to tell your people you here. They come get you.”

“Thank you, captain.” Dannyl walked down the deck and below to his cabin. As he tidied his room and checked his bag he felt the ship slow and swing about. Muffled orders reached him through the roof, then everything shuddered as the hull met the wall of the wharf.

When he climbed out onto the deck again, the crew was lashing the ship to heavy iron rings on the wall. Large, bulging sacks hung from the side of the ship, protecting it from the wharf. A narrow walkway ran along the side of the wall with stairs at either end leading up to the top.

The captain and Jano stood together beside the rail. “You can be on your way now, my lord,” Numo said, bowing. “It was honor to transport you.”

“Thank you,” Dannyl replied. “It was an honor riding with you, Captain Numo,” he added in Vindo. “Sail well.”

Numo’s eyes widened slightly in surprise. He bowed stiffly, then strode away.

Jano grinned. “He like you. Magicians not try be polite our way.”

Dannyl nodded. That didn’t surprise him. As four sailors appeared with Dannyl’s chests, Jano gestured for Dannyl to follow, then they walked across the plank down to the walkway. Dannyl stopped after a few steps, disconcerted by the way the wall seemed to sway and rock under his feet. He stepped aside so that the crewmen carrying the chests could pass. Jano looked back and, noticing Dannyl’s puzzled expression, laughed.

“You must get your legs used to land again,” he called. “Not take long.”

With a hand to the wall, Dannyl followed the sailors along the walkway and up the stairs. At the top he found himself beside a wide, busy road running along the edge of the wharf. The sailors set down the chests, then perched themselves on the wall, apparently pleased to be doing nothing but watching the traffic.

“We had good journey,” Jano said. “Good wind. No storm.”

“No sea leeches,” Dannyl added.

Jano laughed and shook his head. “No eyoma. They swim in north seas.” He paused. “You good man to practice speaking this language with. Learn many new words.”

“I’ve learned a few Vindo words, too,” Dannyl replied. “Not many I could speak in the Elyne court, but they will come in handy if I should ever visit a Vindo drinking house.”

The little man grinned. “If you come to Vin, you welcome to stay with Jano’s family.”

Dannyl turned to regard the man, surprised. “Thank you,” he said.

Pointing to the traffic, Jano narrowed his eyes. “Your people coming, I think.”

Following his gesture, Dannyl searched for a black carriage with Guild symbols painted on the sides, but saw none. Jano took a step toward the stairs.

“I will go now. Sail well, my lord.”

Dannyl turned to smile at the man. “Sail well, Jano.”

The sailor grinned, then hurried down the stairs. Turning back to the street, Dannyl frowned as a carriage of polished red wood stopped in front of him, blocking his view. Then realization dawned as a sailor from the ship leapt down from the driver’s seat and began helping the other crewmen load the chests onto a shelf at the back of the vehicle.

The carriage door opened and a richly dressed man climbed out. For a moment Dannyl was taken aback. He had seen Elyne courtiers before, and had been relieved that he would not have to adopt the ridiculous finery that was fashionable in the Elyne court. Yet he had to admit that the elaborate, close-fitting garb suited this handsome young man. With such a face as that, Dannyl mused, this one must be a favorite among the ladies.

The man took a hesitant step forward. “Ambassador Dannyl?”

“Yes.”

“I am Tayend of Tremmelin.” The man bent into a graceful bow.

“I’m honored to meet you,” Dannyl replied.

“I am most honored to meet you, Ambassador Dannyl,” Tayend replied. “You must be tired after your journey. I will take you directly to your house.”

“Thank you.” Dannyl wondered why this man had been sent in place of servants, and looked at Tayend closely. “Are you from the Guild House?”

“No,” Tayend smiled. “I am from the Great Library. It was arranged by your Administrator that I meet you here.”

“I see.”

Tayend gestured to the door of the carriage. “After you, my lord.”

Climbing aboard, Dannyl breathed a little sigh of appreciation for the luxurious interior. After so many days living in a tiny cabin, with little privacy or comforts, he was looking forward to a bath and something more sophisticated than soup and bread.

Tayend settled on the opposite seat, then knocked on the roof to signal the driver. As the carriage pulled away from the wharf, Tayend’s gaze slid to Dannyl’s robes, then flitted away. He looked out of the window, swallowed audibly, then rubbed his hands on his trousers.

Suppressing a smile at the man’s nervousness, Dannyl considered all he had learned of the Elyne court. He hadn’t heard of Tayend of Tremmelin, though he had read of others from the family.

“What is your position in court, Tayend?”

The young man made a dismissive gesture. “Only a minor one. I avoid it, mostly, and it avoids me.” He glanced at Dannyl, then smiled self-consciously. “I am a scholar. The Great Library is where I spend most of my time.”

“The Great Library,” Dannyl repeated. “I have always wanted to see it.”

Tayend’s face lit with a wide smile. “It is a marvellous place. I will take you there tomorrow, if you wish. I’ve found that magicians appreciate books in a way that most courtiers never do. Your High Lord spent many weeks there once—long before he became High Lord, of course.”

Dannyl looked at the young man, his pulse quickening. “Did he really? What could have interested him so much?”

“All sorts of things,” Tayend replied, his eyes bright. “I was his assistant for some days. Irand—the head librarian—couldn’t keep me out of the library when I was a boy, so he employed me to fetch and carry. Lord Akkarin read all the oldest books. He was looking for something, but I never found out exactly what it was. It was such a mystery. One day he didn’t arrive at his usual time, or the next day, so we asked after him. He had packed up and left all of a sudden.”

“How interesting,” Dannyl mused. “I wonder if he had found what he was looking for.”

Tayend glanced out of the window. “Ah! We’re almost at your house. Would you like me to collect you tomorrow—oh, you’ll want to go to court first, won’t you?”

Dannyl smiled. “I will take you up on your offer, Tayend, but I cannot say when. Shall I send a message when I know?”

“Of course.” As the carriage rolled to a halt, Tayend unlatched the door and pushed it open. “Just send a note to the Great Library—or just come. I’m always there during the day.”

“Very well,” Dannyl said. “Thank you for collecting me from the wharf, Tayend of Tremmelin.”

“It was an honor, my lord,” the young man replied.

Dannyl climbed out of the carriage and found himself standing in front of a wide, three-story house. Columns, bridged by arches, supported a deep verandah. The space between the middle columns was wider than the rest, and the verandah there curved upward to form an arch reminiscent of the University entrance. Beyond was a replica of the University doors.

Four servants had removed the chests from the carriage. Another stepped forward and bowed.

“Ambassador Dannyl. Welcome to the Guild House of Capia. Please follow me.”

From behind, Dannyl heard a cultured voice repeat the title in a whisper. He resisted turning to look at Tayend; instead he smiled to himself and followed the servant into the house. The young scholar was obviously more than a little awed by magicians.

Then he sobered. Tayend had met and assisted Akkarin ten years before. Lorlen had arranged for the scholar to meet him. Coincidence? He doubted it. Lorlen obviously intended for Dannyl to enlist Tayend’s help for his research into ancient magic.


In the little garden the scent of flowers was almost unbearably sweet. A tiny fountain pattered somewhere in the background, hidden by the night shadows. Lorlen brushed away the petals that had fallen onto his robes.

The couple sitting on the opposite bench were distant relations and members of the same House as Lorlen. He had grown up with their eldest son, Walin, before entering the Guild. Though Walin lived in Elyne now, Lorlen liked to visit his old friend’s parents now and then, especially when Derril’s garden was at its best.

“Barran is doing well,” Velia said, her eyes shining in the torchlight. “He’s sure he’ll be promoted to captain next year.”

“Already?” Lorlen replied. “He has accomplished a lot in the last five years.”

Derril smiled. “He certainly has. It’s good to see our youngest has become such a responsible man—despite Velia spoiling him so much.”

“I don’t spoil him anymore,” she protested. Then she sobered. “I’ll be relieved when he no longer has to patrol the streets, though,” she added, her smile suddenly gone.

“Hmmm.” Derril looked at his wife and frowned. “I must agree with Velia. Every year the city becomes more dangerous. These recent murders are enough to make even the bravest man lock his doors at night.”

Lorlen frowned. “Murders?”

“You haven’t heard?” Derril’s eyebrows rose. “Why, the whole city’s in a stir about them.”

Lorlen shook his head. “I might have been told, but events in the Guild have occupied my mind lately. I haven’t paid much attention to city matters.”

“You should poke your head out of that place more often,” Derril said disapprovingly. “I’m surprised you haven’t taken an interest in this. They say it’s the worst set of murders seen in the city for over a hundred years. Velia and I know more about them, of course, because of Barran.”

Lorlen smothered a smile. Not only did Derril relish telling people the “secret” information that his son passed on, but he enjoyed being the first to know anything. It must have been satisfying indeed for him to be the first to inform the Administrator of the Magicians’ Guild of these crimes.

“You had better tell me about them then—before anyone else realizes my ignorance,” Lorlen prompted.

Derril leaned forward and placed his elbows on his knees. “What is chilling about this murderer is that he performs some kind of ritual as he kills his victims. A woman witnessed one of the murders two nights ago. She had been packing clothes away when she heard her employer struggling with a stranger. When she realized the pair was coming into the room, she hid inside a cupboard.

“She said that the stranger tied up her employer, then took out a knife and cut off his shirt. He made small cuts on the man’s body, five on each shoulder.” Derril splayed his fingers over his shoulder. “Those cuts are how the Guard knows it’s the same man doing the murders. The woman said the murderer placed his fingers over the cuts and started chanting under his breath. When he was finished whatever he was saying, he cut the man’s throat.”

Velia made a noise of disgust, then rose. “Excuse me, but this gives me the chills.” She hurried inside.

“The servant said something else,” Derril added. “She said she thought the man was dead before his throat was cut. Barran says the cuts on the man’s shoulders weren’t enough to kill anybody, and there was no sign of poison. I think he has decided that the man passed out. I’d be half dead with fright, myself... are you all right, Lorlen?”

Lorlen forced his rigid facial muscles into a smile. “Yes,” he lied. “I just can’t believe I haven’t heard about this yet. Did the woman give a description of the murderer?”

“Nothing useful. She said it was difficult to see because it was dark and she was watching through a keyhole, but that the man had dark hair and was dressed in shabby clothes.”

Lorlen drew in a deep breath and let it out slowly. “And chanting, you said. How strange.”

Derril grunted in agreement. “Until Barran joined the Guard, I had no idea the world held such crooked and disturbed people. The things some people do!”

Thinking of Akkarin, Lorlen nodded. “I’d like to know more about this. Will you tell me if you hear anything?”

Derril grinned. “I’ve caught your interest, haven’t I? Of course I will.”

6 An Unexpected Proposal

Rothen looked up in surprise as Sonea entered the room.

“Back already?” His eyes slid to her robes. “Oh. What happened?”

“Regin.”

“Again?”

“All the time.” Sonea dropped her book of notepaper on the table. It made a squelching noise and a small puddle of water began to form around it. Opening it, she found that all her notes were saturated, the ink running and mixing with the water. She groaned as she realized she would have to write them all out again. Turning away, she walked into her bedroom to change.

At the entrance to the University, Kano had leapt out and thrown a handful of food in her face. She had approached the fountain in the center of the courtyard, planning to wash it off, but as she leaned over the pool the water had surged up over her, drenching her to the skin.

Sighing, she opened her clothes cupboard and pulled out an old shirt and a pair of trousers and changed into them. Picking up the saturated robes, she returned to the guestroom.

“Lord Elben said something interesting yesterday.”

Rothen frowned. “Oh?”

“He said that I’m several months ahead of the class—almost as good as the winter intake of novices are.”

He smiled. “You did have months of practice before you started.” Then his smile faded as he saw her clothes. “You must wear your robes all the time, Sonea. You can’t go to class like that.”

“I know, but I don’t have any clean ones left. Tania will bring some back tonight.” She held out the dripping robes. “Unless you could dry these for me?”

“You should be able to do that yourself by now.”

“I can, but I’m not supposed to do any magic unless—”

“—instructed by a magician,” Rothen finished. He chuckled. “That rule is a flexible one, Sonea. Generally it’s understood that, if a teacher instructs you to practice what he has taught you, you’re free to do it outside of class unless he says otherwise.”

She grinned, then looked down at the robes. Steam began to mist from the material as she sent heat flowing through it. When the robes were dry, she set them aside and helped herself to a leftover sweet cake from the morning meal.

“You said once that an exceptional novice can be moved to a higher class. What would it take for me to do that?”

Rothen’s eyebrows rose. “A lot of work. You may be well practiced at using magic, but your knowledge and understanding of it would need much improvement.”

“So is it possible?”

“Yes,” he said slowly. “If we work every night and Freeday you might pass the half-year tests in a month or so, but the hard work wouldn’t stop there. Once you had advanced, you would need to catch up with the winter novices. If you fail the First Year tests, you’ll drop back down to the summer class again. That means you’d have to work very hard for two or three months.”

“I understand.” Sonea bit her lip. “I want to try it.”

Rothen considered her closely, then moved to the chairs and sat down. “So you’ve changed your mind, then.”

Sonea frowned, puzzled. “Changed my mind?”

“You wanted to wait until the others had caught up.”

She waved a hand dismissively. “Forget them. They’re not worth it. Do you have the time to teach me? I don’t want to take you away from your classes.”

“That won’t be a problem. I’ll do my preparation work while you study.” Rothen leaned forward. “I know you’re doing this to get away from Regin. I have to point out that the next class mightn’t be any better.”

Sonea nodded. She dropped into a chair beside him and began to carefully separate her notes. “I’ve thought about that. I don’t expect them to like me, just to leave me alone. I’ve watched them when I could, and there doesn’t seem to be someone like Regin among them. They have no single novice who rules them.” She shrugged. “I can live with being ignored.”

Rothen nodded. “You’ve thought about this carefully, I see. Very well. We’ll do it.”

A new feeling of hope swept over Sonea. This was a second chance. She grinned at him. “Thank you, Rothen!”

His shoulders lifted. “I am your guardian, after all. Giving you special treatment is my role.”

Holding up the wet sheets of paper, she started drying them. The sheets curled as they dried, the ink setting the letters into grotesque smudges. She sighed again at the thought of rewriting them.

“Although Warrior Skills is not my area of expertise,” Rothen said, “I think you’ll find it useful to know how to raise and hold a basic shield. That ought to protect you from pranks like this.”

“Whatever you say,” Sonea replied.

“And since you’ve already missed the start of class, you may as well stay here and learn it now. I’ll tell your teacher... well, I’ll think of a good excuse.”

Surprised and pleased, Sonea set the dried notes aside. Rothen rose and pushed the table out of the way.

“Stand up.”

Sonea obeyed.

“Now, you know that everyone, magicians and non-magicians, has a natural boundary protecting the area contained by our body. No other magician can influence anything within that area without first exhausting us. Otherwise a magician could kill another simply by reaching inside and crushing the heart.”

Sonea nodded. “The skin is the boundary. The barrier. Healing gets past it, but only by skin to skin contact.”

“Yes. Now, so far you’ve extended your influence like an arm, reaching out to, say, light a candle or lift a ball. A shield is like extending all of your skin outward, like inflating a bubble around yourself. Watch, and I’ll make a shield that is visible.”

Rothen’s gaze became distracted. His skin began to glow, then it was as if a layer of it pushed outward, smoothing and losing the contours of the body. It expanded and formed a translucent globe of light around him, then fell back inward and disappeared.

“That was a shield of light only,” he said. “It would not have repelled anything. But it’s useful to start with because it’s visible. Now, I want you to make the same sort of shield, but just around your hand.”

Sonea lifted a hand and concentrated on it. Making it glow was easy—Rothen had already taught her how to create a light cool enough that it wouldn’t burn anything. Focusing on her skin, she sought a sense of it as a border to the influence of her magic, then pushed outward.

At first the glow expanded in erratic bursts, but after several minutes she managed to control its growth so it spread in all directions at once. Eventually a glowing sphere surrounded her hand.

“Good,” Rothen said. “Now try it for your whole arm.”

Slowly, with a few hesitations, the globe elongated to her shoulder, then bloated to a larger sphere.

“Now your upper body.”

It was the strangest feeling. She felt as if she had spread herself out to fill a bigger space. As she enlarged the sphere to include her head her scalp tingled.

“Very good. Now all of you.”

Bits of the sphere collapsed inward as she concentrated on her legs, but after attending to them she found herself surrounded entirely within a glowing ball. Looking down, she realized that it extended below her feet, into the floor.

“Excellent!” Rothen said. “Now draw it back inward from all directions at once.”

Slowly, and not without a few parts collapsing sooner than others, she pulled the sphere back inward until it sat against her skin. Rothen nodded thoughtfully.

“You’ve got the idea,” he said. “You just need some practice. Once you have it right, we’ll work on changing the shield to basic repelling and containing ones. Now, let’s see that again.”


As the door closed behind Sonea, Rothen gathered his books and papers. From what he had heard, Garrel’s novice was a natural leader. It was unfortunate, but not unexpected, that the boy chose to strengthen his hold on the class by turning them against another novice. Sonea had been the obvious victim. Unfortunately, it had dashed all hopes of her being accepted by the rest.

He sighed and shook his head. Had he worked at stamping out her slum vocabulary and schooling her habits and mannerisms for nothing? He had assured Sonea so many times that she had only to make a friend or two and her past would be forgotten. But he had been wrong. Her classmates had not only rejected her, but had turned on her.

The teachers had not taken a liking to her, either, despite her exceptional abilities. Tales of knifings and childhood thieving were circulating, according to Rothen’s elderly friend, Yaldin. The teachers could not neglect her education, however. He could make sure of that.

—Rothen!

Stopping, Rothen concentrated on the voice in his mind.

—Dannyl?

—Hello, old friend.

As Rothen focused his mind on the voice it became clearer and a sense of its personality grew. He also perceived the presence of other magicians, their attention drawn by the call, fading away as they turned their minds from the conversation.

—I was expecting a communication sooner than this. Was your ship delayed?

—No, I arrived two weeks ago. I haven’t had a moment to spare since. The First Ambassador had arranged so many introductions and briefings I can hardly keep up. I think he’s disappointed that I actually need to sleep.

Rothen restrained himself from asking if the First Guild Ambassador to Elyne had become as portly as was rumored. Mental communication was not completely private, and it was always possible that another magician might hear.

—Have you seen much of Capia?

—A little. It is as beautiful as they say. An image of a grand city of yellow stone, blue water and boats, came to Rothen.

—Have you been to court yet?

—No, the King’s aunt died a few weeks ago and he has been in mourning. I’m visiting today. Should be interesting.

A sense of smugness followed the words, and Rothen knew his friend was thinking of all the scandal, rumor and gossip he had dug up about the people of the Elyne court before leaving Kyralia.

—How is Sonea going?

—Her teachers praise her abilities, but there is a troublemaker in her class. He has gathered the rest of the novices to his side.

—Can you do anything? There was sympathy and understanding behind Dannyl’s words.

—She just proposed moving to the next class.

—Poor Rothen! That will be hard work—for both of you.

—I can manage. I only hope she doesn’t find the winter novices as unfriendly.

—Give her my sympathies. Dannyl’s attention wavered. I must go now. Farewell.

—Farewell.

Rothen gathered his books and started for the guestroom door. Remembering the unpopular, sullen novice that Dannyl had been, he felt a little better. The situation might be tough for Sonea now, but it would work itself out in the end.


“Tayend of Tremmelin, eh?” Errend, the First Guild Ambassador to Elyne, shifted in his seat, his impressive stomach cinched by the sash over his robes. “He’s the youngest son of Dem Tremmelin. A scholar of the Great Library, I believe. Don’t see him in court much—though I have seen him with Dem Agerralin. Now there’s a man of dubious associations.”

Dubious associations? Dannyl opened his mouth to ask the Ambassador to elaborate, but the big man was distracted as the carriage swung about.

“The Palace!” he exclaimed, gesturing to the window. “I will introduce you to the King, then it is up to you to socialize as you please. I have an appointment that will fill most of the afternoon, so feel free to take the carriage back when you’ve had enough. Just remind the driver to return at dusk for me.”

The carriage door opened and Dannyl followed Errend out. They stood at one side of a large courtyard. Before them was the Palace, a sprawling structure of domes and balconies standing at the top of a long, wide staircase. Grandly dressed people were making their way up the stairs, or resting on stone seats placed at intervals for this purpose.

Turning back to his companion, Dannyl found Errend floating just above the ground beside him. The First Ambassador smiled at Dannyl’s expression of astonishment.

“No sense in walking if you don’t have to!”

As the man floated up the stairs, Dannyl examined the faces of the courtiers and servants about him. They did not appear surprised by this use of magic, though some glanced at the Ambassador and smiled. While a man of bulk and cheerful character, Errend was obviously also a strong and skilled magician. Impressed, yet reluctant to draw attention to himself in such a flamboyant manner, Dannyl decided to use his legs instead.

He found Errend waiting at the top. The man gestured expansively away from the Palace.

“Look at that view! Isn’t it wonderful?”

Still breathing deeply from the climb, Dannyl turned around. The entire bay spread before him. The pale yellow buildings shone in the sunlight, and the water was a lustrous blue.

“ ‘A necklace for a King,’ the poet Lorend once said.”

“It is a beautiful city,” Dannyl agreed.

“Full of beautiful people,” Errend added. “Come inside. I will introduce them to you.”

Another arched facade stood before them, the grandest Dannyl had yet seen. The arches were several times the height of a man, low at each side, and soaring high at the center. Behind the tallest arch a doorless entrance offered access to the Palace.

Six stiff-backed guards eyed Dannyl as he followed Errend into a cavernous room. The interior was vast and airy. Fountains and stone sculptures had been placed at intervals along either side, and arched doorways between them led to further rooms and corridors. Plants draped from alcoves in the walls or sprouted from huge pots standing on the stone floor.

Errend started down the center of the room. Groups of men and women stood or strolled about, some with children. All were dressed in sumptuous clothing. As Dannyl passed they examined him with curiosity, the closest bowing gracefully.

He glimpsed Guild robes here and there: women in green, men in red or purple. To the magicians who looked his way and nodded, he inclined his head politely in return. Guards dressed in uniform stood at every doorway, watching all attentively. Individual musicians wandered about, playing stringed instruments and singing quietly. A messenger raced by, his face shining with sweat.

At the end of the hall, Errend passed through another arch into a smaller room. Opposite the arch stood a pair of doors decorated with the Elyne King’s mark: a fish leaping over a bunch of grapes. A guard bearing the same mark on his breastplate stepped forward to ask for Dannyl’s name.

“Lord Dannyl, Second Guild Ambassador for Elyne,” Errend replied.

It does sound grand, Dannyl thought. He felt a stirring of excitement as he followed Errend across the room. Two courtiers were shooed off a large cushioned bench, and the guard indicated the magicians should sit. Errend settled down with a sigh.

“This is where we wait,” he said.

“How long?”

“As long as it takes. Our names will be whispered to the King as soon as he finishes with his current audience. If he wishes to see us straightaway, we will be called. If he doesn’t,” Errend shrugged and waved at the people in the room, “we wait our turn, or we go home.”

Feminine voices and laughter filled the room. A group of women sitting on a bench opposite Dannyl’s was listening to the murmuring of a brightly dressed musician sitting cross-legged on the floor at their feet. An instrument lay across the man’s knees, and he was running his fingers across the strings to produce an idle trickle of notes. As Dannyl watched, the man turned to croon something to one of the women, and she put a hand to her mouth to cover her smile.

As if sensing that he was being watched, the man looked up and met Dannyl’s gaze. He rose in one graceful movement and began plucking at the strings, coaxing out a melody. To Dannyl’s amusement, what he’d assumed was a shirt was actually a strange belted costume with a short skirt, and the musician’s legs were covered in brightly painted yellow and green stockings.

“A man in a robe. A man in a robe.

The man in the robe, is in our abode.”

The musician danced across the room, stopping in front of the bench. Bending slightly, the musician crossed his eyes at Dannyl.

“A man in a dress. A man in a dress.

The man in the dress, will cause him distress.”

Unsure how to react to this, Dannyl looked questioningly at Errend. The Ambassador was watching with bored tolerance. The musician spun about and struck a dramatic pose.

“A man with a belly. A man with a belly...”

The musician paused and sniffed the air.

“...the man with the belly, has a nice smelly.”

Errend’s mouth twitched into a half-smile as a scattering of laughter came from around them. The musician bowed, then spun on his heel and raced back across the room to the women.

“In Capia my lover has red, red hair, and eyes like the deepest sea,” he sang in a sweet, rich voice. “In Tol-Gan my lover has strong, strong arms and she winds them both around me.”

Dannyl chuckled. “I’ve heard another version of this song sung by Vindo sailors, but it would not be at all acceptable to the ears of those young ladies.”

“No doubt the song you heard was the original, sweetened here for the court,” Errend replied.

The musician presented his instrument to one of the ladies with great ceremony, then began performing backflips. “What a strange man,” Dannyl said.

“He practices the art of flattery with the aim to insult.” Errend waved a hand dismissively. “Just ignore him. Unless, of course, you do find him entertaining.”

“I do, though I’m not sure why.”

“You’ll get over it. He once—”

“The Guild Ambassadors for Elyne,” boomed the voice of the King’s guard.

Errend rose and strode across the room, Dannyl following a step behind. The guard gestured for them to wait, then disappeared behind the door.

Dannyl heard Errend’s title called, then his own. There was a pause, then the guard returned and ushered them through.

The audience chamber was smaller than the previous room. Two tables stood on either side, and at them sat several men of middle to late years—the King’s advisers. In the center was another table, with documents, books, and a plate of sweets arranged on it. Behind this central table, in a large cushioned chair, sat the King. Two magicians stood behind him, their watchful eyes noting every movement in the room.

Following Errend’s example, Dannyl stopped and dropped to one knee. It had been many years since he had knelt before a King—and he had been only a child, brought to the Kyralian court with his father as a rare treat. As a magician, he took it for granted that all but other magicians would bow to him. Though he did not feel a great desire to have people make such an obeisance to him, if they didn’t he felt oddly slighted, as if common courtesy had been breached. Gestures of respect were important even if just for the sake of good manners.

But to kneel before another was humbling, and that was an emotion he was unused to experiencing. He could not help thinking how satisfying it must be for a King at these moments, to be one of only a few people in the Allied Lands who magicians would genuflect to.

“Rise.”

Standing again, Dannyl looked up to find the King examining him with interest. At over fifty years of age, Marend’s reddish-brown hair was streaked with white. His gaze, however, was alert and intelligent.

“Welcome to Elyne, Ambassador Dannyl.”

“Thank you, Your Highness.”

“How was your journey?”

Dannyl considered. “Good winds. No storms. Pleasantly uneventful.”

The man chuckled. “You sound like a sailor, Ambassador Dannyl.”

“It was an educational voyage.”

“And how do you plan to spend your time in Elyne?”

“When I am not dealing with the issues and requests that come my way, I shall explore the city and surrounds. I am particularly looking forward to seeing the Great Library.”

“Of course,” the King smiled. “Magicians seem to have a limitless hunger for knowledge. Well, it is a pleasure to meet you, Ambassador Dannyl. I’m sure we will encounter each other again. You may go.”

Dannyl inclined his head respectfully, then followed Errend to a door on one side. They entered a smaller room, where several guards stood, talking quietly. Another man in uniform ushered them through a second door into a corridor, which led to one of the side doors of the large room they had first entered.

“Well,” Errend said. “That was quick and not very exciting, but he’s had a good look at you now, and that was the point of this little trip. Now, I’m going to leave you here. Don’t worry. I’ve arranged for somebody to—ah, here they come.”

Two women approached. They bowed with dignity as Errend introduced them. Dannyl nodded in reply, smiling as he remembered some particularly interesting gossip he had unearthed about these sisters.

As the elder sister hooked her hand under Dannyl’s arm, Errend smiled and excused himself. The sisters then led Dannyl about the room, introducing him to several famous Elyne courtiers. Soon Dannyl had put faces to many of the names he’d memorized.

All of these courtiers seemed genuinely eager to meet him, and he found himself feeling almost uneasy about their interest. Finally, as the sun began to send long beams of light into the room and he saw others leaving, Dannyl decided he could excuse himself without appearing rude. Once he had extracted himself from the sisters, he started toward the Palace entrance but before he reached it a man stepped out and addressed him.

“Ambassador Dannyl?” The man was thin, his hair cut very short, and his clothes were a dark green that was somber compared to the colors of the rest of the Elyne court.

Dannyl nodded. “Yes?”

“I am Dem Agerralin.” The man bowed. “How was your first day at court?”

The man’s name was familiar, but Dannyl could not remember why. “Pleasant and entertaining, Dem. I have made many new acquaintances.”

“But I see you are on your way home.” Dem Agerralin took a step back. “I will make you late.”

Suddenly Dannyl recalled where he’d heard the name before. Dem Agerralin was the man of “dubious associations” that Errend had spoken of. Dannyl looked closer. The Dem was a man in his middle years, he guessed. There was nothing obviously remarkable about him.

“I am in no hurry,” Dannyl said.

Dem Agerralin smiled. “Ah, that is good. There is a question I wish to ask you, if you will allow me.”

“Of course.”

“It is a private matter.”

Intrigued, Dannyl indicated that the man should continue. The Dem seemed to consider his words, then made an apologetic gesture.

“There is little that escapes the notice of the Elyne court and, as you might have guessed already, we have a fascination for the Guild and magicians. We are all very curious about you.”

“I have noticed.”

“So it should not surprise you that certain rumors have reached us about you.”

A chill prickled Dannyl’s skin. He carefully schooled his expression to one of surprise and puzzlement.

“Rumors?”

“Yes. Old ones, but ones that I and a few others have had cause to recall and reconsider since we learned you were coming to live in Capia. Do not be alarmed, my friend. Such matters are not considered as, ah, taboo here as they are in Kyralia, though it is not always wise to be too public about it. We are all very curious about you, so may I be so bold as to ask if those rumors had any truth to them?”

The man’s tone was hopeful. Dannyl realized that he was staring at the man in disbelief, and forced himself to look away. If a courtier asked such a question in Kyralia, it might start a scandal that could ruin a man’s honor and lower the standing of his House. In response, Dannyl ought to be outraged, and let the Dem know that such questions were inappropriate.

But the anger and bitterness he’d once felt toward Fergun for circulating such rumors had faded since the Warrior had been punished for blackmailing Sonea. And besides, though he had not found himself a wife to forever dispel those lingering suspicions, the Higher Magicians had still chosen him to be a Guild Ambassador.

Dannyl considered how he should reply. He was wary of offending the man. The Elynes must be less reserved than Kyralians, but how much? Ambassador Errend had called Dem Agerralin a man of “dubious associations.” In any case, it would be foolish to make an enemy on his first day at court.

“I see,” Dannyl said slowly. “I think I know the rumor you refer to. It seems I will never shake that one, though it’s been ten—no, fifteen—years since it started. The Guild, as you must know, is a very conservative place, which is why the novice who circulated that rumor knew it would cause me great difficulties with my peers. He was prone to making up all manner of stories about me.”

The man nodded, his shoulders dropping. “I see. Well, please forgive me for bringing up a painful subject. I had noted that the former novice you speak of is now living in the mountains—a fort, I believe. We had wondered about that one as well, since the one who denounces loudest is often most likely...”

Dem Agerralin let his sentence hang as a man drew near. Looking up, Dannyl was surprised to see Tayend approaching. Once again, he was impressed by the scholar’s striking appearance. Dressed in dark blue, his red-blond hair tied back, Tayend looked very much at place in the court. The scholar bowed gracefully, then smiled at them both.

“Ambassador Dannyl, Dem Agerralin.” Tayend inclined his head to both of them. “How are you, Dem?”

“Well,” the man replied. “And you? We haven’t seen you at court for a while, young Tremmelin.”

“Regrettably, my duties at the Great Library keep me away.” Tayend did not sound at all regretful. “I’m afraid I must steal Ambassador Dannyl from you, Dem. There is a matter I need to discuss with him.”

Dem Agerralin glanced at Dannyl, his expression unreadable. “I see. Then I must bid you goodbye, Ambassador.” He bowed, then strolled away.

Tayend waited until the man was out of hearing, then narrowed his eyes at Dannyl. “There’s something you should know about Dem Agerralin.”

Dannyl smiled wryly. “Yes, I think he made it clear what that is.”

“Ah.” Tayend nodded. “And did he bring up the matter of rumors concerning yourself?” As Dannyl frowned in dismay, the scholar nodded. “I thought he would.”

“Is everybody discussing this?”

“No, only a few people in certain circles.”

Dannyl wasn’t sure if he should be relieved at that news. “It’s been years since those accusations were made. I’m surprised they reached the Elyne court at all.”

“You shouldn’t be. The idea that a Kyralian magician might be a lad—which is the polite term here for men like Agerralin—is amusing. But don’t worry. It does sound like the usual name-calling between boys. If I may say so, you’re surprisingly calm, for a Kyralian. I was half afraid you’d blast poor old Agerralin to ashes.”

“I wouldn’t remain Guild Ambassador for long if I did.”

“No, but you don’t even seem angry.”

Again, Dannyl considered how to answer. “When you’ve spent half of your life denying such rumors, you come to sympathize with the kind of person you’re claimed to be. To have inclinations that are unacceptable, and to have to either deny them or undertake elaborate measures to hide them, would be a terrible way to live.”

“That is how it is in Kyralia, but not here,” Tayend said, smiling. “The Elyne court is both awful in its decadence, and wonderful for its freedom. We expect everyone to have a few interesting or eccentric habits. We love gossip, yet we don’t place too much faith in rumors. In fact, we have a saying here: ‘There’s always a bit of truth in each rumor; the trouble is finding out which bit.’ So, when are you coming to the library?”

“Soon,” Dannyl replied.

“I look forward to seeing you there.” Tayend took a step away. “But for now, I have another matter to attend to. Until then, Ambassador Dannyl.” He bowed.

“Until then,” Dannyl replied.

Watching the scholar stride away, Dannyl shook his head. He had gathered rumors and speculation about the Elyne courtiers like little prizes, never thinking that they would be doing the same regarding him. Did the entire court know of the rumor that Fergun had started so many years ago? Knowing that it was still discussed made Dannyl uneasy, but he could only trust that Tayend was right, and the court would not take such stories seriously.

With a sigh, he stepped through the Palace entrance and started down the long staircase to the Guild carriage.

7 The Great Library

Sonea hugged her books closer to her chest. It had been yet another day of constant pranks and insults. The week loomed before her like an endless trial. Only the fifth week, she reminded herself. Five long years stood between now and graduation.

Each day was exhausting. When she wasn’t enduring Regin and the other novices, she was going out of her way to avoid them. If the teacher left the classroom, even for a minute, Regin used the time to harass her. She had learned to keep her notes out of reach and to take extreme care whenever she walked across the room or sat in her chair.

For a little while she had managed to escape him for an hour each day by returning to Rothen’s rooms at midbreak to eat with Tania, but Regin began ambushing her on the way to and from the University. She had tried staying in the classroom for the hour a few times, but once Regin realized what she was doing, he waited until the teacher had left and returned to harass her.

Eventually she had arranged with Rothen that she would meet him in his classroom during the midbreak. She helped him set up or dismantle the contraptions of glass vials and pipes for his lessons. Tania brought little lacquered boxes filled with savories for them to eat.

Her stomach always sank when the gong called novices to afternoon classes. Rothen and Tania had both offered to escort her to and from classrooms, but she knew that this would only confirm to Regin and his friends that they were getting to her. At all times, she endeavored to ignore the pranks and snide comments, knowing that reacting to them would only encourage more.

The final gong always brought relief. Whatever social games the novices indulged in after lessons must have been more interesting than taunting her, because the entire class always hurried away as soon as the teacher dismissed them. Sonea would wait until they were gone and then make her way in peace to the Magicians’ Quarters. But just in case they changed their minds, she always took the long route through the gardens, choosing a different path every time and keeping close to other magicians and novices.

Today, like every day, as she neared the end of the corridor she felt her shoulders relax and the knot in her stomach begin to unwind. Silently she thanked Rothen for letting her stay in his rooms. It made her shudder to think of the torments Regin would have devised for her if she had to return to the Novices’ Quarters each day.

“There she is!”

Recognizing the voice, she felt cold rush over her. The corridor was full of novices from higher classes, but that had never been a deterrent. She lengthened her stride, hoping to reach the busy Entrance Hall of the University where there was sure to be a magician or two, before Regin and his friends could catch up.

The sound of running feet filled the corridor behind her.

“Sonea! Sooooneeeeaaaa!”

The older novices about her turned at the noise. Sonea knew by their stares that Regin and his gang were right behind her now. She drew in a deep breath, resolving to face Regin without flinching.

A hand grabbed her arm and pulled her around roughly. She shook it off and glared at Kano.

“Were you ignoring us, slum girl?” Regin asked. “That’s very rude, but I guess we can’t expect you to have any manners, can we?”

They encircled her. She glanced around at the grinning faces. Hugging her books closer to her body, she stepped forward and pushed her shoulder between Issle and Alend to break free from the ring of bodies. Hands reached out, grabbed her shoulders and yanked her back into the middle. Surprised, she felt a growing dread. They hadn’t tried to physically abuse her before, other than giving her arm a yank to make her trip over, or fall into something unpleasant.

“Where are you going, Sonea?” Kano asked. Someone gave her another shove in the back. “We want to talk to you.”

“Well, I don’t want to talk to you,” she growled. Turning, she tried to push her way through again, but was shoved and pulled back into the circle. She felt a flash of fear. “Let me through.”

“Why don’t you beg us to, slum girl?” Regin jeered.

“Yeah, go on and beg. You must be good at it.”

“You had plenty of practice in the slums.” Alend laughed. “Surely you haven’t forgotten so quickly. I bet you were one of those snivelling brats that hang around the back of our fathers’ houses begging for food.”

“Please give me some food. Pleeese!” Vallon whined. “I’m staaaarving!” The others laughed and joined in.

“Or perhaps she had something to sell,” Issle suggested. “Good evening, my lord.” Her voice became a suggestive wheedle. “Need some company?”

Vallon choked back a laugh. “Just think how many men she’s had.”

Sniggers filled the corridor, and then Alend recoiled from her. “She’s probably diseased.”

“Not anymore.” Regin sent Alend a knowing look. “They told us the Healers checked her when she was found, remember? They’d have fixed her up.” He turned to Sonea and looked her up and down, his lips pursed.

“So... Sonea.” His voice became silky. “How much did you charge?” He moved closer, and as Sonea shrank away hands pressed into her back to push her toward him again. “You know,” he drawled. “Perhaps I was wrong. Perhaps I could get to like you. You’re a bit skinny, but I can overlook that. Tell me, did you specialize in any certain, ah, favors?”

Sonea tried to shrug away the hands on her shoulders, but the novices tightened their gip. Regin shook his head in mock sympathy. “I suppose the magicians said you had to give it up. How frustrating for you. But they don’t have to know. We won’t tell them.” He tilted his head to one side. “You could make a lot of money around here. Lots of rich customers.”

Sonea stared at him. She couldn’t believe he would even pretend to be interested in bedding her. For a moment she was tempted to call his bluff, but knew if she did, he’d claim she’d taken him seriously. Over his shoulders she could see that the other novices in the corridor had stopped to watch the scene with interest.

Regin leaned closer. She could feel his breath on her face. “We’ll just call it a business arrangement,” he crooned. He was just trying to intimidate her, and to see how much she would endure. Well, she had dealt with this kind of bullying before.

“You’re right, Regin,” she said. His eyes widened in surprise. “I have met many men like you before. And I do know exactly what to do with them.” She snaked a hand up and wrapped it tightly around his throat. His hands flew to his neck, but before he could grab her wrist she slipped a leg around his and shoved with all her strength. She felt his knee buckle and enjoyed a surge of triumph as he fell backward, arms flailing the air, and crashed onto the floor.

Silence filled the corridor as all novices, young and old, stared at him. Sonea sniffed with disdain.

“What a fine example you are, Regin. If this is how the men of House Paren behave, then they have no better manners than the average bolhouse lout.”

Regin stiffened and his eyes narrowed to slits. She turned her back at him and glared at the other novices, daring any to touch her again. They backed away and, as the circle broke, she strode through.

She had taken only a few steps when Regin’s voice echoed loudly in the corridor.

“You’re obviously well qualified to make such comparisons,” he called. “How does Rothen compare? He must be a very happy man, having you living in his rooms. Ah, it all makes sense now. I always wondered how you managed to convince him to be your guardian.”

Sonea felt herself go cold, then hot anger flooded her body. She clenched her fists, resisting the urge to turn back. What could she do? Hit him? Even if she dared strike the son of a House, he would see it coming, and shield. And then he would know how much he had got to her.

The quiet muttering of the older novices followed her down the corridor. She forced herself to keep her eyes on the stairs ahead, not wanting to see the speculation in their faces. They wouldn’t believe what Regin had suggested. They couldn’t. Even if they believed the worst of her because of her origins, nobody would think something like that of Rothen.

Would they?


“Administrator!”

Lorlen stopped at the University entrance and turned to face Director Jerrik. “Yes?”

The Director approached Lorlen and handed him a piece of paper. “I received this request from Lord Rothen yesterday. He wants to move Sonea to the winter intake of First Year novices.”

“Really?” Lorlen scanned the page, skimming through Rothen’s explanations and assurances. “Do you think she’s capable?”

Jerrik pursed his lips thoughtfully. “Possibly. I’ve asked the First Year teachers, and they all believe she could do it if she studied hard.”

“And Sonea?”

“She certainly seems willing to do the work.”

“Then you will allow it?”

Jerrik frowned and lowered his voice. “Probably. What I don’t like about this is the true motivation behind the change.”

“Oh? What is that?” Lorlen resisted smiling. Jerrik had always maintained that novices never worked harder purely for the sake of learning. They were motivated by the need to impress, be the best, please their parents, or to be in the company of friends or someone they admired.

“As we expected, she hasn’t mixed with the other novices well. In such circumstances, the rejected novice often becomes an object of derision for others. I believe she wants only to get away from them.” Jerrik sighed. “While I admire her determination, my concern is that the winter class will be no more accepting. She will have worked hard for nothing.”

“I see.” Lorlen nodded as he considered Jerrik’s words. “Sonea is a few years older than the others in her class, and she is mature for her age—by our standards at least. Most novices are little more than children when they come here, but they lose most of their childish habits during the first year. The winter novices may be less troublesome.”

“True, they are a sensible group,” Jerrik agreed. “Training in magic can’t be hurried along, however. She can fill her mind with knowledge, but if she hasn’t gained the skill to use her powers well, she may make dangerous mistakes later.”

“She has been using her powers for over six months,” Lorlen reminded him. “Though Rothen spent that time teaching her the basic education she needed to enter the university, her powers would have become familiar to her—and it must be frustrating to watch the other novices fumbling with theirs.”

“So I take it you are in favor of allowing this?” He gestured to Rothen’s request.

“I am.” Lorlen handed back the request. “Give her the opportunity. I think you’ll find her more resourceful than you expect.”

Jerrik shrugged. “Then I will allow it. She will be tested in five weeks. Thank you, Administrator.”

Lorlen smiled. “I will be interested to hear how well she does. Will you keep me informed?”

The old man nodded. “If you wish.”

“Thank you, Director.” Lorlen turned away and started down the University stairs to the waiting carriage. He entered, tapped on the roof to signal the driver, and leaned back as the vehicle jerked into motion. It passed through the Guild Gates and rolled on into the city, but Lorlen was already too deep in thought to notice.

The invitation to dinner at Derril’s house had come the day before. While Lorlen often had to decline such invitations, he had reorganized his work to allow this visit. If Derril had more news of the murders, Lorlen wanted to hear it.

Derril’s story of the murderer had chilled Lorlen. The cuts on the victim, the strange ritual, the witness’ belief that the victim was dead before his throat was slashed... perhaps it was only because the idea of black magic was in his mind already that these murders sounded so suspicious.

But if they were the work of a black magician, that would mean one of two things: either a rogue magician capable of black magic was preying on people in the city, or this murderer was Akkarin. Lorlen shivered as he considered the implications of these two possibilities.

When the carriage stopped he looked up in surprise to find they had arrived. The driver climbed down and opened the door, revealing an elegant mansion fronted with balconies.

Lorlen stepped out and was greeted at the door by one of Derril’s servants. The man took Lorlen through the house to an internal balcony overlooking the garden. Lorlen placed his hands on the balcony rail and gazed down at the drooping little oasis of vegetation; the plants looked sad and scorched around the edges now.

“I’m afraid this summer has been a little too much for most of my plants,” Derril said mournfully as he walked out of the house to join the Administrator. “My gan-gan bushes won’t survive. I’ll have to arrange for new ones to be sent from the mountains of Lan.”

“You should have them pulled out now before the roots spoil,” Lorlen suggested. “Ground gan-gan root has remarkable antiseptic properties and, if added to sumi, is a good treatment for digestive disorders.”

Derril chuckled. “You still haven’t forgotten all the Healer training, have you?”

“No.” Lorlen smiled. “I may grow into a grumpy old Administrator, but I’ll be a healthy one. I’ve got to put all that knowledge of medicine to use somehow.”

“Hmmm.” Derril’s eyes narrowed. “I wish the Guard had someone with your knowledge in their ranks. Barran has another mystery on his hands.”

“Another murder?”

“Yes and no,” Derril sighed. “They think this one is a suicide. At least that’s what it looks like.”

“Does he believe it was made to look like one?”

“Perhaps.” Derril lifted an eyebrow. “Barran has come for dinner. Why don’t we go in and ask him to tell you more about it?”

Lorlen nodded and followed the old man into the house. They entered a large guestroom, its windows covered by paper screens decorated with paintings of flowers and plants. A young man in his mid-twenties sat in one of the luxurious chairs. His wide shoulders and slightly hooked nose reminded Lorlen instantly of the man’s brother, Walin.

Barran looked up at the Administrator, then rose hastily and bowed.

“Greetings, Administrator Lorlen,” he offered. “How are you?”

“Good, thank you,” Lorlen replied.

“Barran,” Derril said, waving Lorlen into a seat, “Lorlen is interested in this suicide you’ve been investigating. Can you tell him the details?”

Barran shrugged. “It’s no secret—just a mystery.” He turned to look at Lorlen, his blue eyes troubled. “A woman approached a guard in her street and told him that she’d discovered her neighbor dead. He investigated and found a woman with her wrists cut.” Barran paused and his eyes narrowed. “The mystery is that she hadn’t lost a great deal of blood yet and she was still warm. In fact the wounds were quite shallow. She should have been alive.”

Lorlen absorbed this. “The blade might have been poisoned.”

“We’ve been considering the possibility, but if that’s the case, then it must be a subtle poison we’ve never heard of. All poisons leave signs, even if the damage is only visible in the internal organs. We found no weapon, which might have retained some residue, and that is strange in itself. If someone slashes their wrists, the implement they used is usually close by. We searched the house and found nothing but a few kitchen knives, which were clean and still in their box. She wasn’t strangled, either, from what we can tell. But there are other details which make me suspicious.

“I found footprints that didn’t match the shoes of any servants, friends or family. The intruder’s shoes were old and strangely shaped, so they left some distinctive markings. In the room where the woman was discovered, the window was unlocked and not quite closed. I found fingerprints and smudges on the sill that looked like dried blood, so I had another look at the body and discovered the same fingerprints on her wrists.”

“Hers?”

“No, the fingerprints were large. A man’s.”

“Someone tried to stop the bleeding, perhaps, then fled through the window when he heard others approaching?”

“Perhaps. But the window is three stories up and the wall is smooth and has few handholds. I don’t think even an experienced thief could have climbed down.”

“Were there any footprints below?”

The young man hesitated before answering. “When I went outside to inspect the ground I found the strangest thing.” Barran traced an arc in the air. “It was as though someone had flattened the dirt into a perfect circle. In the center were two footprints, the same as those in the room above, and others, leading away. I followed them, but they led onto pavement.”

Lorlen’s heart skipped a beat, then began to race. A perfect circle on the ground and a drop of three stories? To levitate, a magician must create a disk of power below his feet. It could leave a circular impression in soft soil or sand.

“Perhaps this imprint was already there,” Lorlen suggested.

Barran shrugged. “Or he used some kind of ladder with a circular base. It is a strange case. There were, however, no cuts on the woman’s shoulders so I don’t believe she was a victim of the serial murderer we’ve been looking for. No, that one hasn’t struck for a while, unless we simply haven’t heard—”

The chime of a gong interrupted them. Velia appeared in the doorway, holding a tiny gong and striker.

“Dinner is ready,” she announced. Rising, Lorlen and Barran started toward the dining room. She gave her son a hard look. “And there’ll be no talking about murders or suicides at my table! It’ll put the Administrator off his meal.”


Dannyl watched from the carriage windows, as the grand yellow stone buildings of Capia moved in and out of view. The sun was low in the sky, and the whole city seemed to glow with warm light. The streets were full of people and other carriages.

Each day and most evenings of the last three weeks he had been occupied with visiting or entertaining influential people, or helping Errend deal with ambassadorial business. He had met most of the Dems and Bels that frequented court. He had learned the personal history of every Guild magician living in Elyne. He had recorded the names of Elyne children with magical potential, answered or forwarded questions to the Guild from courtiers, negotiated the purchase of Elyne wines, and healed a servant who had burned himself in the Guild House kitchen.

That so much time had passed without a chance to begin Lorlen’s research worried him, so he resolved that the next time he had a few hours free he would visit the Great Library. A messenger sent to Tayend to ask if an evening visit was possible had returned with the assurance that he could explore the library at any time he wished, so when Dannyl learned that he would have this evening free, he had ordered an early meal and a carriage.

Unlike Imardin, Capia’s streets wound about in a haphazard way. The carriage zigzagged back and forth, occasionally rolling around the side of a steep hill. Mansions gave way to large houses, which were replaced by rows of small, neat buildings. A turn over a rise took Dannyl along the edge of a shabbier area. Wood and other, cruder, materials replaced yellow stone, and the men and women roaming the street wore coarser clothing. Though he saw nothing as confronting as the sights he had seen in the slums of Imardin while searching for Sonea, Dannyl was mildly dismayed. The face of Elyne’s capital city was so beautiful it was disappointing to find that it, too, had its poor area.

Leaving the houses behind, the carriage set out into rolling hills. Fields of tenn swayed in the slight breeze. Vare berry vines, planted in rows, hung full of fruit waiting to be harvested and then stored ready to make wine. Orchards of heavily laden pachi and piorre trees appeared here and there, some of the fruit being picked by teams of Vindo who travelled to Elyne each year for the work.

As the last rays of sunlight deepened from yellow to orange, and the carriage continued to roll farther away from the city, Dannyl grew concerned. Had the driver misunderstood his instruction? He lifted a hand to knock on the roof, then paused as the carriage turned around the foot of a hill.

Ahead, the dark ribbon that was the road curved to meet the base of a tall cliff. In the light of the setting sun, the yellow stone glowed as if a fire burned within. Shadows stood out starkly, marking straight edges, windows and arches of a towering facade that he recognized from sketches in books.

“The Great Library,” Dannyl murmured in wonder.

A huge doorway had been carved out of the cliff face, filled with a massive wooden door. As the carriage drew closer, Dannyl saw that a small square of darkness at the bottom edge was actually a man-sized doorway built within the larger door. A figure waited beside it.

Dannyl smiled as he saw the man’s bright clothing. He drummed his fingers on the window frame impatiently as the carriage slowly closed the distance to the library. As it pulled up before the facade, Tayend strode forward to open the carriage door.

“Welcome to the Great Library, Ambassador Dannyl,” he declared, bowing gracefully.

Dannyl looked up and shook his head in wonder. “I can remember seeing pictures of this in books when I was a novice. They don’t come close to showing what it’s really like. How old is it?”

“Older than the Guild,” Tayend replied, a little smugly. “About eight or nine centuries, we think. Parts of it are older, and the best is still to come—so follow me, my lord.”

They stepped through the small door, Tayend closing and bolting it behind them, and entered a long corridor with a curved roof. This extended into darkness, but before Dannyl could create a globe light, Tayend directed him to a steep, torch-lit stairway at one side.

At the top of this Dannyl found himself in a long, narrow room. On one side were the windows he had seen from the carriage. They were huge, and filled with small squares of glass fixed within an iron framework. The wall opposite was patterned by squares of golden light. Chairs were positioned in groups of three or four at intervals, and standing beside the closest was an elderly man.

“Good evening, Ambassador Dannyl.” The man bowed with the cautious stiffness of the very old. “I am Irand, the librarian.”

Irand had a deep, startlingly strong voice that suited the inhuman size of the library. Short white hair covered his scalp thinly, and he wore a simple shirt and trousers made from a dusty gray fabric.

“Good evening, Librarian Irand,” Dannyl replied.

A smile creased the librarian’s face. “Administrator Lorlen informed me that you had a task to perform for him here. He said you would want to see all the sources that the High Lord checked during his research.”

“Do you know what those sources were?”

The old man shook his head. “No, but Tayend has some recollection of them. He was Akkarin’s assistant, and has agreed to help you in your search.” The old man nodded to the scholar. “You will find his knowledge of ancient languages useful. He will also send for food and drink if you need it.” Tayend nodded eagerly, and the old man smiled.

“Thank you,” Dannyl replied.

“Well then, don’t let me keep you waiting.” Irand’s eyes seemed to gleam for a moment. “The library awaits.”

“This way, my lord,” Tayend said, moving back to the stairs.

Dannyl followed the scholar down to the dark passage again. Lamps stood in a row on a shelf to one side. Tayend reached for one.

“Don’t trouble yourself,” Dannyl said. He focused his will and a globe light swelled into existence beside his head, sending their shadows down the passage. Tayend glanced at the globe light and winced.

“They always leave spots in front of my eyes.” He reached up and took down a lamp. “I might need to leave you on your own at some point, so I’ll take one with me anyway.”

With the lamp swinging at his side, Tayend started down the passage. “This place has always been a store of knowledge. We have some crumbling bits of paper from eight centuries ago in one of our rooms, which contain references to a library of sorts that was old even then. Only a few rooms were used as a library originally. The rest of this place once housed a few thousand people. We’ve filled almost every room with books and scrolls, tablets and paintings—and we’ve carved more rooms out of the rock ourselves.”

As they walked Dannyl watched the darkness retreat like some kind of magic-fearing mist. Abruptly, they came to a blank wall, the darkness fleeing to either side. Tayend turned and started down the passage to his right.

“So which languages do you know?” Dannyl asked.

“All of the ancient dialects of Elyne and Kyralia,” Tayend replied. “Our old languages are very similar, but the further back you look, the more differences there are. I can speak modern Vindo—I learned it from some servants at home—and a bit of Lans. I can translate the ancient Vindo and Tentur glyphs, given access to my books.”

Dannyl glanced at his companion, impressed. “That’s a lot of languages.”

The scholar shrugged. “Once you know a few, the rest come easily. One day I’ll get around to learning modern Lonmar, and a few of their old languages. I just haven’t had reason to yet. After that, well, perhaps I’ll start on Sachakan languages. Their old tongues are also quite similar to ours.”

After several more turns and a few stairways, Tayend paused at a doorway. With an unusually sober expression, he indicated that Dannyl should enter before him. Stepping through, Dannyl drew in a breath of amazement.

Uncountable rows of shelves extended into the distance, divided by a wide aisle directly in front of him. Though the ceiling of the room before him was low, the far wall was so far away he could not see it. Massive columns of stone filled the gap between roof and floor every hundred paces. All was sparsely lit by lamps set on top of heavy iron bases.

The enormous room emanated a feeling of incomprehensible age. Compared to the solid weight of the stone columns and ceiling, the books seemed like such fragile, temporary things. Humbled, Dannyl felt a melancholy descend upon him. He could remain for a year in this place and still make no more imprint on it than a moth wing brushing against the cold stone walls.

“Compared to this, everything else in the library is recent,” Tayend said in a hushed voice. “This is the oldest room. Perhaps thousands of years old.”

“Who made it?” Dannyl breathed.

“Nobody knows.”

Dannyl started down the aisle, gazing at the endless shelves of books.

“How am I going to find what I need?” he asked despairingly.

“Oh, that’s not a problem.” Tayend’s voice was suddenly bright—a sound that cut through the heavy silence of the room. “I have everything waiting for you in the same study room that Akkarin used. Follow me.”

Tayend started down the aisle, his steps light and springy. After passing several shelves, he turned and walked between them, then reached a large stone stairway that rose into a gap in the ceiling. Taking the steps two at a time, he led Dannyl up to the beginning of a wide corridor. Again, the ceiling was disturbingly low. Doors stood open on either side, and Tayend stopped beside one and gestured for Dannyl to enter.

Dannyl found himself in a small room. A large stone table stood in the middle, and piled on top of it were several stacks of books.

“Here we are,” Tayend said. “And these are the books Akkarin read.”

The volumes ranged from tiny, palm-sized books to a huge tome that would have been a challenge to carry. Dannyl examined them, unstacking and restacking as he read the titles.

“Where do I start?” he asked aloud.

Tayend pulled a dusty volume from the middle of a stack. “This was the first one Akkarin read.”

Dannyl looked at Tayend, impressed. The young man’s eyes were bright with enthusiasm.

“You remember that well?”

The scholar grinned. “You need a good memory to use the library. How else do you find a book again after you’ve read it?”

Dannyl looked down at the tome in his hands. Magical Practices of the Grey Mountains Tribes. The date below the title indicated that the book was at least five centuries old, and he knew there hadn’t been tribes living in the mountains between Elyne and Kyralia for at least that long. Intrigued, he opened it and started reading.

8 Just What He Intended

“So we just sit and listen?” Yaldin’s brow furrowed, and his eyes roved about as he concentrated on the voices in the Night Room. Rothen suppressed a chuckle. The elderly magician’s face was too expressive. Anyone who saw him would know that he was trying hard to listen to something.

But with Dannyl gone, Rothen needed someone else to “spy” on the other magicians. Everybody was being cautious now that a scandalous rumor was circulating. Since the rumor involved Rothen, the gossips always checked if he was nearby before talking freely, so he had decided to train his elderly friend, Yaldin, in Dannyl’s techniques.

“You’re being too obvious, Yaldin.”

The old man frowned. “Obvious? What do you mean?”

“When you—”

“Lord Rothen?”

Startled, Rothen looked up to find Administrator Lorlen standing beside his chair.

“Yes, Administrator?”

“I would like to speak to you in private.”

Glancing about, Rothen noted that several magicians standing nearby were eyeing Lorlen expectantly. Yaldin frowned, but said nothing.

“Of course,” Rothen replied. He rose and followed Lorlen across the room to a small door. It swung open at Lorlen’s approach, and they stepped through into the Banquet Room.

The room was dark. A globe light flared above the Administrator’s head and floated up to illuminate a large table. Lorlen moved to one of the chairs. Taking a seat next to the Administrator, Rothen braced himself for the conversation he had been dreading.

Lorlen glanced at Rothen, then let his eyes slide to the table. He sighed and his expression became grim.

“Are you aware of the rumors circulating about you and Sonea?”

Rothen nodded. “I am.”

“No doubt Yaldin has told you.”

“And Sonea.”

“Sonea?” Lorlen’s eyebrows rose.

“Yes,” Rothen said. “She told me four weeks ago that one of her fellow novices had invented the rumor, and she was concerned people would believe it. I told her not to worry. Gossip has a lifespan, that speculation eventually becomes old news, and is forgotten.”

“Hmmm.” Lorlen frowned. “Rumors like this are not dismissed as lightly as you may hope. Several magicians have come to me to express their concerns. They feel it is not proper for any magician to have a young woman living in their rooms.”

“Moving her will do nothing to disprove the rumor.”

Lorlen nodded. “That is true. Nevertheless, it would prevent further speculation that could be quite harmful to you both. In retrospect, Sonea should have moved to the Novices’ Quarters when she began classes.” He looked at Rothen directly. “Not to prevent what the rumors suggest, but to prevent rumors beginning at all. Nobody believes anything untoward has occurred between you and Sonea.”

“Then why move her at all?” Rothen spread his hands. “She will still spend time with me in my rooms, in study or simply for the evening meal. If we give in now, how long will it be before others question the intent behind every moment we spend together?” He shook his head. “Leave things as they are, and those who are foolish enough to give this gossip credence will be assured that no evidence of improper conduct has been found.”

A wry smile curled Lorlen’s mouth. “You are confident, Rothen. What does Sonea think?”

“This rumor has upset her, of course, but she believes that it will be forgotten when she is no longer the target of Garrel’s favorite.”

“When—if—she reaches the winter intake?”

“Yes.”

“Do you think she will reach the higher class and manage to stay there?”

“Easily.” Rothen smiled, not bothering to conceal his pride. “She is a fast learner, and quite determined. The last thing she’ll want to do is slip back down to Regin’s class.”

Lorlen nodded, then looked at Rothen closely. “I don’t share your optimism about this rumor, Rothen. Your arguments against moving her have some merit, but if you are wrong, the situation could grow much worse. I believe she should be moved, for her own sake.”

Rothen frowned at the Administrator. Surely Lorlen did not think that Rothen would bed a novice, particularly a girl less than a third his age? Lorlen’s gaze was level and hard, however, and Rothen realized with a shock that the magician had actually considered the possibility.

Lorlen couldn’t believe this of him! How could he even think about it? When had Rothen given Lorlen cause to doubt him?

Then, in a flash, the reason came to him. It is because of Akkarin, he thought. If I had learned that my closest and oldest friend was practicing the evilest of magic, I would be reassessing my presumptions about everyone I knew. Taking a deep breath, Rothen considered his next words carefully.

“Only you can understand why I want to keep her close by my side, Lorlen,” he said in a low voice. “She has enough to fear here already without being sent to live among those who would do her harm, where she might be vulnerable to more than just the other novices.”

Lorlen frowned, then his eyes widened slightly and he looked away. He straightened and nodded slowly. “I understand your concern. It must be frightening for her. But if I make a decision that goes against the opinion of the majority, it will draw attention. I do not feel she will be in any greater danger living in the Novices’ Quarters... but I will try to defer the decision as long as possible in the hope that this will blow over, as you believe it will.”

Rothen nodded. “Thank you.”

“And,” Lorlen added as an afterthought, “I shall keep a closer eye on this novice, Regin. Troublemakers are a problem that should be addressed long before graduation.”

“That would be appreciated,” Rothen replied.

Lorlen rose, and Rothen followed suit. For a moment their eyes met, and Rothen saw a raw, harassed look in Lorlen’s gaze that sent a shiver down his spine. Then Lorlen turned away and started toward the door to the Night Room.

Once there, they parted, Lorlen moving to his customary chair. As Rothen crossed to his own seat he caught several glances cast in his direction. He kept his expression sober and unconcerned. Yaldin looked up at him questioningly.

“Nothing of great concern,” Rothen said, dropping into his chair. “Now, where were we? Oh, yes. Being obvious. This is what you looked like...”


At the sound of the knock on her door, Sonea sighed. She stopped writing and, without turning, called out, “Come in.”

The door clicked open.

“There’s someone to see you, Lady Sonea,” Tania said in a strained voice.

Glancing over her shoulder, Sonea saw that a woman in green robes stood in the doorway of her bedroom. A black sash circled the woman’s waist. Sonea leapt to her feet and bowed quickly.

“Lady Vinara.”

Sonea looked at the Head of Healers carefully. It was hard to gauge the Healer’s mood, since Vinara’s expression always seemed to be stern and cold. The woman’s gray eyes seemed steelier than usual.

“It’s a little late to be studying,” Vinara noted.

Sonea glanced at her desk. “I’m working to catch up with the winter class.”

“So I’ve heard.” Vinara gestured at the door, which swung shut. Before it closed, Sonea caught a glimpse of Tania watching anxiously. “I wish to talk to you privately.”

Sonea indicated that Vinara could take her chair, then perched on the edge of the bed. She watched, her stomach tight with dread, as Vinara sat down and arranged her robes.

“Are you aware of certain rumors regarding Lord Rothen and yourself?”

Sonea nodded.

“I have come here to question you about them. You must be honest with me, Sonea. These are serious matters. Is there any truth in them?”

“No.”

“Lord Rothen has not made any improper suggestions?”

“No.”

“He’s not... touched you in any way?”

Sonea felt her face warming. “No. Never. It’s just a stupid rumor. Rothen has never touched me, or me him. It makes me sick to hear them say it.”

Vinara nodded slowly.

“I am glad to hear it. Remember, if you have any cause to be afraid, or if you have been coerced in any way, you do not have to stay here. We will help you.”

Sonea swallowed her anger. “Thank you, but there’s nothing going on here.”

Vinara’s eyes narrowed. “I must also tell you that, if these rumors were proven to be true, and you were a willing participant, your standing in the Guild would be damaged. At the least, you would lose Rothen’s guardianship.”

Of course. Regin would love that. It might be what he was aiming for all along. Sonea gritted her teeth. “If it comes to that, Lorlen can truth-read me again.”

Vinara straightened and looked away. “Let’s hope it does not come to that.” She sniffed. “Well, I am sorry I had to raise these delicate issues with you. You must understand that it is my duty to investigate. If you have anything you wish to discuss, please come and see me.” She rose and regarded Sonea critically. “You are exhausted, young woman. Too much study will make you sick. Get some sleep.”

Sonea nodded. She watched as Lady Vinara opened the door and glided out, then waited until she heard Tania close the main door to the apartments. Then she turned and pounded her pillow with her fists.

“I want to kill him!” she growled. “I want to sink him in the Tarali River with rocks tied to his feet so nobody ever finds his body.”

“Lady Sonea?”

Hearing the timid voice, Sonea looked up and tossed strands of her messed-up hair out of her eyes. “Yes, Tania?”

“Wh-who do you want to kill?”

Sonea threw the pillow back into place. “Regin, of course.”

“Ah.” Tania sat on the edge of the bed. “You had me worried for a moment. They’ve been questioning me, too. I didn’t believe it, of course, but they told me all these things to watch out for and... well... I...”

“Don’t worry, Tania,” Sonea sighed. “There’s only one person in the Guild who has ever tried something like that on me.”

The servant’s eyes widened. “Who?”

“Regin, of course.”

Tania scowled. “What did you do?”

Remembering, Sonea smiled. “Just a little trick I learned from Cery.” Standing up, she began to explain.


It was late when Lorlen returned to his office in the University. Earlier in the day Lord Osen, his assistant, had brought in a small box of mail. Rifling through, Lorlen had seen a small package from Elyne among the rest of the letters. He had set it aside to read later.

Brightening his globe light, Lorlen now retrieved the package. He opened it and regarded Dannyl’s elegant writing appreciatively. The young magician’s script was confident and neat. Lorlen settled back in his chair and started reading.

To Administrator Lorlen.

I first visited the Great Library a week ago, and have returned each night to continue my research. The Librarian Irand has assigned to me the same scholar who helped the High Lord in his search: Tayend of Tremmelin. This man has an extraordinarily good memory of the High Lord’s visits, and I have made considerable progress.

According to Tayend, the High Lord carried a journal in which he made notes, copied passages from books, and drew maps. Guided by the scholar, I have read through half of the sources the High Lord consulted, and copied out much that is useful, including everything Tayend remembers the High Lord showing interest in.

There are several subjects that I could pursue from here, which is how it was for the High Lord as well. Most require a journey to a tomb, temple or library in the Allied Lands. When I have finished reading, I should know all the possibilities the High Lord considered. From there I must choose which one I will pursue.

To aid in my decision, Tayend visited the wharf, where records have been kept of all arrivals and departures for many years. He found mention of a Lord Akkarin who arrived here over ten years ago, then left some months later for Lonmar, then returned to Capia to take another ship to the Vin Islands, returning again to Capia a month later. There were no further entries.

Considering the information I have gathered, it is likely that the High Lord visited the Splendid Temple in Lonmar. I have copied out my notes, and included them with this letter.

Second Guild Ambassador for Elyne, Dannyl.

Putting the letter down, Lorlen leafed through the notes that followed. They were clear and well-written, describing and piecing together scraps of information from ages before the formation of the Guild. Finally, on the last page, Dannyl had included a small note.

Found a book describing the Sachakan War written soon after the event. It is remarkable in that it portrays the Guild as the enemy—and it paints an unflattering image indeed! After completing this task I will return to the library to read it through.

Lorlen smiled. If he’d known Dannyl was this good at research, he would have made use of him earlier. Though Dannyl had not yet unearthed anything that could be used against Akkarin, he had gathered a lot of information in a short time. Lorlen’s hopes that something useful would be found had grown stronger.

No awkward questions had been asked, either. As he’d hoped, Dannyl was sensible enough to keep the matter confidential even though he didn’t know the reason for the secrecy. If Dannyl did discover something that caused him to suspect that Akkarin had learned black magic, Lorlen was sure the young magician would inform him in secret.

What then? Lorlen pursed his lips, considering. He would probably have to tell Dannyl the truth. But he was confident that the young magician would see the wisdom of avoiding a confrontation with Akkarin until it could be done without risk. Knowing that Rothen and Sonea had agreed to this plan would also help to convince Dannyl to stay silent.

But it would be better to avoid telling Dannyl the truth for as long as possible. For now, Lorlen would help Dannyl gather as much information as he could. Pulling out a sheet of paper, Lorlen wrote a letter to the First Guild Ambassador. He sealed it carefully, marked the address of the Guild House in Elyne, then placed it in another box on his desk. Lord Osen would arrange for a courier to send it tomorrow.

Rising, Lorlen stowed Dannyl’s letter and notes in a box that he kept for important documents. He strengthened the magical barrier that prevented others from reaching the contents, then stowed it in a cupboard behind his desk. As he left the room he allowed himself a small smile.

Akkarin was right when he said I chose the right man for the position of Second Guild Ambassador to Elyne.

9 Considering the Future

“Could you get me a plainer one of these?” Sonea asked, holding up the silver hairbrush.

“Oh, not that, too?” Tania sighed. “Aren’t you going to take anything nice?”

“No. Nothing valuable and nothing that I like.”

“But you’re leaving so much behind—what about a pretty vase? I’ll bring you some flowers now and then. It’ll make the room so much nicer.”

“I’m used to much worse, Tania. When I work out a way to hide or protect things, I might come and get some books.” Sonea regarded the contents of a box lying on her bed. “That’s it.”

Tania sighed. She picked up the box and carried it out of the room. Following her, Sonea found Rothen pacing in the guestroom. His brow was furrowed and when he saw her he hurried over and took her hands.

“I’m sorry about this, Sonea,” he began. “I—”

“Don’t apologize, Rothen,” she told him. “I know you did what you could. It’s better that I go.”

“But it’s nonsense. I could—”

“No.” She gave him a level look. “I have to go. If I don’t, Regin will make sure they find proof. And he still might try, if his aim is to have your guardianship of me removed. Then the teachers can ignore me and I won’t be able to do anything about it.”

His frown returned. “I hadn’t thought of that,” he growled. “It’s not right that a mere novice should cause us this much trouble.”

She smiled. “No, but he won’t stop me from getting ahead of him, will he? We’ll keep working.”

Rothen nodded. “We will.”

“Then I’ll meet you outside the Magicians’ Library in an hour?”

“Yes.”

She squeezed his hands and let them go, then nodded to Tania. The servant lifted the box and carried it to the door. As Sonea stepped into the doorway she looked back and smiled at Rothen.

“I’ll be fine, Rothen.”

He managed a thin smile in reply. Turning away, Sonea started down the corridor, Tania at her side.

The Magicians’ Quarters were unusually busy for a Freeday morning. Sonea ignored the stares of the magicians who passed, knowing the anger she felt would be too hard to hide if she met their gaze. She half heard Tania mutter something about fairness as they started down the stairs, but didn’t ask her to repeat it. She’d had enough of such talk in the last few days.

She had sounded much braver than she felt, back in Rothen’s rooms. Once in the Novices’ Quarters there would be no escape from Regin. She could lock her room door with magic—Rothen had shown her how—but she was sure Regin would find some way to get at her. And she couldn’t stay in there all the time.

This was his revenge for her slandering of his House. She should have thrown him on the floor and left it at that. But she’d opened her mouth and insulted him and he wasn’t going to let her get away with it. So much for ignoring him in the hope he’d get bored and leave her alone.

Now it wasn’t just the novices muttering her name in the corridors. She’d heard enough whispers from magicians to know their opinion of her. None really cared who had started the rumor or why. “Rumors like these should never start in the first place,” as one teacher had put it. Living with Rothen looked suspicious, especially when her past was taken into consideration. As if every woman of the slums was a whore!

And she’d heard many people asking why she should be treated any differently than the other novices. They had to live in the Novices’ Quarters. So should she.

Reaching the doors to the Magicians’ Quarters, Sonea started across the courtyard. The stifling heat of midsummer was well past, and the day was pleasantly warm. She could feel a faint heat radiating from the paving stones.

She had never entered the Novices’ Quarters before. Only once, during the night she and Cery had snuck around the Guild so long ago, had she peeked through the windows and seen the rooms inside. They had been small, plain and undecorated.

Several groups of novices stood around the entrance. They stopped their conversations to stare at her, some leaning closer together to whisper. She gave them a mild glance as she passed, then stepped through the open doors.

More novices roamed along the corridor inside, and Sonea resisted the urge to scan for familiar faces. Tania moved to the right of the entrance and knocked on a door.

As they waited, Sonea watched the novices in the corridor from the corner of her eye. She wondered where Regin was. Surely he’d be present for this little moment of victory.

The door opened and a thin, sharp-featured Warrior looked down at Sonea. She bowed and considered the mutterings and complaints she’d heard about the Director of the Novices’ Quarters. Ahrind wasn’t liked.

“So. You’re here,” he said coldly. “Follow me.”

He strode down the corridor, novices carefully veering out of his path, and stopped at a door not far along. It clicked open to reveal a room as plain and small as the ones she remembered.

“No changes to the room,” Ahrind said. “No visitors after the evening gong. If you are to be absent for any number of nights, please inform me two days prior to the first evening. The room is to be kept clean and tidy. Make arrangements with the servants as necessary. Am I clear?”

Sonea nodded. “Yes, my lord.”

He turned and strode away. Exchanging a glance with Tania, Sonea entered the room and looked around.

It was slightly bigger than her bedroom had been, containing a bed, a cupboard for her clothes, a desk and some shelves. Moving to the window, she looked out at the Arena and the gardens. Tania set the box down on the bed and began unpacking.

“I didn’t see that boy,” Tania noted.

“No. That doesn’t mean he wasn’t watching, or one of his followers.”

“It’s good that you’re so close to the entrance.”

Nodding, Sonea took her notebooks, pens and paper out of the box and stowed them in the drawers of the desk. “Ahrind probably wants to keep an eye on me. Make sure I’m not a bad influence.”

Tania made a rude noise. “The servants don’t like him much. I’d give him no reason to notice me, if I were you. What are you going to do about meals?”

Sonea shrugged. “I’ll have dinner with Rothen. Otherwise... the Foodhall, I expect. I might be able to slip in, take something, and slip away again before Regin finishes.”

“I’ll bring you something to eat here, if you like.”

“You shouldn’t,” Sonea sighed. “You’ll just make yourself a target.”

“I’ll come with one of the other servants, or get one to drop something off for you. I’m not going to let that boy deprive you of food.”

“He won’t, Tania,” Sonea assured her. “Now, everything’s unpacked.” She rested her palm over the cupboard door, then over the drawer of the desk. “Everything’s locked. Let’s meet Rothen at the Magicians Library.”

Smiling, Sonea shooed the servant out of the room, locked the door, and set off for the University.


“What’s this in my pocket?” Drawing a slip of paper out of his coat, Tayend examined it. “Ah, my notes from my visit to the wharf.” He read them and frowned. “Akkarin was gone for six years, wasn’t he?”

“Yes,” Dannyl replied.

“That meant he spent five of them here, after he returned from the Vin Islands.”

“Unless he travelled overland to somewhere else,” Dannyl pointed out.

“Where to?” Tayend frowned. “I wish we could ask the family he stayed with, but they’re likely to let Akkarin know someone was asking about him and you seem to want to avoid that.” He drummed his fingers on the railing of the ship.

Dannyl smiled and turned his face into the wind. He had come to like the scholar since they had begun working together. Tayend had a quick mind and a good memory, and was companionable as well as a good assistant. When Tayend had offered to accompany Dannyl on his journey to Lonmar, Dannyl had been surprised and pleased. He’d asked if Irand would allow it.

“Oh, I only work here because I want to,” Tayend had replied, clearly amused. “In fact, I don’t work as such. I get the run of the library in exchange for making myself useful to visitors and researchers.”

When Dannyl had expressed his desire to visit Lonmar and Vin he had been sure that the First Ambassador would disapprove. After all, he’d only been in Elyne a few months. But Errend had been delighted. It seemed that Lorlen had asked him to visit these countries to deal with some ambassadorial matters, and Errend was not at all fond of ship travel. He’d promptly decided that Dannyl would go in his place.

This was all suspiciously convenient...

“How did he get back to the Guild?”

Dannyl started, then turned to regard Tayend. “Who?”

“Akkarin.”

“They say he just walked up to the Guild Gates, all dirty and dressed in ordinary clothes, and nobody recognized him at first.”

Tayend’s eyes widened. “Really? Did he say why?”

Dannyl shrugged. “Possibly. I have to admit, I didn’t pay much attention at the time.”

“Wish we could ask him.”

“If we’re looking for ancient magic, the reason Akkarin turned up looking shabby at the end of his search is probably not going to tell us anything. Lorlen said his quest wasn’t completed, remember.”

“I’d still like to know,” Tayend insisted.

The ship rocked as it passed through the arms of the bay. Looking back, Dannyl sighed with appreciation at the shining city. He was lucky, indeed, to have been assigned the role of Guild Ambassador in such a place. Tayend stowed the slip of paper away.

“Goodbye, Capia,” he said wistfully. “It’s like leaving the arms of a beautiful lover you’ve shamelessly taken for granted. Only in the leaving do you realize what you have.”

“The Splendid Temple is said to be a magnificent place.”

Tayend looked around the ship’s deck. “Yes, and we will be seeing it for ourselves. What an adventure awaits us! What fine sights and memorable experiences—and what a fantastic way to travel.”

“You might want to wait until you see your room before you come up with any more grand descriptions of our journey—though I must say you will find sleeping in it a memorable experience.”

Tayend swayed as the ship rolled through the waves. “It will stop this soon, won’t it? When it gets farther out?”

“Stop what?” Dannyl asked slyly.

The scholar looked at him in horror, then flung himself at the railing and vomited. Dannyl immediately felt ashamed of his teasing remark.

“Here.” He took Tayend’s hand and placed his palm on the man’s wrist. Closing his eyes, he sent his awareness into the scholar’s body, but the sense of it vanished as the scholar snatched his hand away.

“No. Don’t.” Tayend had flushed a bright red. “I’ll be fine. It’s seasickness, right? I’ll get used to it.”

“You don’t have to be ill,” Dannyl said, puzzled by the scholar’s reaction.

“Yes, I do.” Tayend leaned over the railing again. After a moment, he slumped against the rail and wiped his mouth on a nosecloth. “It’s all part of the experience, you see,” he told the waves. “If you stop me feeling it, I won’t have any good stories to tell.”

Dannyl shrugged. “Well, if you change your mind...”

Tayend coughed. “I’ll let you know.”


As the last rays of light left all but the highest leaves within the forest, Lorlen stepped out of the University and made his way toward the High Lord’s Residence.

Once again, he must endeavor to store all he knew in some dark part of his mind. Once more he would make friendly conversation, tell a few jokes, and drink the best wine in the Allied Lands.

He would have trusted his life to Akkarin, once. They had been close as novices, confiding in each other, defending each other. Akkarin had been the one most likely to break Guild rules and propose mischief. Lorlen frowned. Had that led to this interest in black magic? Was Akkarin just bending the rules for the sake of his own entertainment?

He sighed. He didn’t like fearing Akkarin. It was easier, on nights like this, to invent a good reason for Akkarin to be using black magic. But doubts always remained.

“The fight has weakened me. I need your strength.”

What fight? Who had Akkarin battled? Remembering the blood that had covered Akkarin in Sonea’s memory, Lorlen could only conclude that the adversary had been badly hurt. Or murdered.

Lorlen shook his head. The stories Derril and his son had told were strange and disturbing. Both involved victims who appeared to be dead despite wounds that weren’t severe. This wasn’t enough to prove a black magician had been at work, however. He could not help thinking that, if he wasn’t worried about Akkarin, he might have been more inclined to bring the deaths to Vinara’s attention. The Healer might know a way to detect if a person had been killed with black magic.

But if the Guild started looking for a black magician, would it all lead to a premature confrontation with Akkarin?

Stopping at the door of the High Lord’s Residence, Lorlen sighed. He must push these things from his mind. Some of the magicians actually suspected that the High Lord could read thoughts from a distance. While he didn’t believe this, Akkarin did have an uncanny ability to discover secrets before anyone else.

As always, the door swung inward as soon as he knocked. Stepping inside, he found Akkarin standing a few steps away, holding out a glass of wine.

Lorlen smiled and accepted the glass. “Thank you.”

Taking another glass from a nearby table, Akkarin lifted it to his lips. He regarded Lorlen over the brim. “You look tired.”

Lorlen nodded. “I’m not surprised.” He shook his head and turned away, starting toward a chair.

“Takan says dinner will be ready in ten minutes,” Akkarin said. “Come upstairs.”

Moving to the left side of the room, Akkarin opened the door to the stairs and waved Lorlen through. As he climbed, Lorlen felt an uneasiness steal over him, and he was suddenly acutely aware of the black-robed magician following behind him. He pushed the feeling away and stepped into the long corridor at the top of the stairs.

Halfway along, a pair of doors stood open, inviting Lorlen into the dining room. Takan stood within. As the servant bowed, Lorlen resisted looking too closely at the man, though he’d had few opportunities to examine Takan since learning of Akkarin’s activities.

Takan moved to a chair and drew it out. Settling into it, Lorlen watched the man perform the same service for the High Lord, then hasten away.

“So what is bothering you, Lorlen?”

Lorlen looked at Akkarin in surprise. “Bothering me?”

Akkarin smiled. “You seem distracted. What is on your mind?”

Rubbing the bridge of his nose, Lorlen sighed. “I had to make an unpleasant decision this week.”

“Oh? Is Lord Davin trying to purchase more materials for his weather experiments?”

“No—well, that too. I had to move Sonea to the Novices’ Quarters. It seemed cruel when she’s obviously not getting along well with her classmates.”

Akkarin shrugged. “She was fortunate to spend as long with Rothen as she did. Someone was bound to protest eventually. I’m surprised the issue wasn’t raised earlier.”

Nodding, Lorlen waved a hand. “It is done. I can only try to keep an eye on the situation between her and her classmates, and urge Lord Garrel to curb Regin’s antics.”

“You can try, but even if you asked Garrel to follow his novice about it wouldn’t stop the boy doing whatever he’s doing. She will have to learn to fend for herself if she’s to gain the other novices’ respect.”

Takan arrived with a tray, and set down small bowls of soup. Cupping the bowl in one long-fingered hand, Akkarin sipped experimentally, then smiled.

“You always mention Sonea when you come here,” he remarked. “It’s not like you to show an interest in a particular novice.”

His mouth full of the salty soup, Lorlen swallowed carefully. “I’m curious to see how well she fits in—to see how much her background hampers her progress. It is in all our interests to see she adapts to our ways, and fulfils her potential, so I take note of her progress from time to time.”

“Thinking of recruiting more from the lower classes, perhaps?”

Lorlen grimaced. “No. Are you?”

Looking away, Akkarin lifted his shoulders slightly. “Sometimes. There must be a lot of potential we miss by ignoring so much of the population. Sonea is proof of that.”

Lorlen chuckled. “Not even you could persuade the Guild to try it.”

Returning with a large platter, Takan set it down between Lorlen and Akkarin. He removed the empty bowls and replaced them with plates. As the servant disappeared again, Akkarin began selecting from the many dishes arranged on the platter.

As he followed suit, Lorlen allowed himself a little sigh of contentment. It was good to be eating a proper formal dinner again. The rushed meals he ate in his office were never as good as freshly prepared food.

“What news do you have?” he asked.

Between mouthfuls, Akkarin described the antics of the King and his court. “I’ve heard good reports of our new Ambassador in Elyne,” he added. “Seems that more than a few young unmarried women have been presented to him, but he has been politely disinterested in all of them.”

Lorlen smiled. “I’m sure he’s enjoying himself.” Pausing, he decided this was a good opportunity to pose a question about Akkarin’s travels. “I envy him. Unlike you, I never had the opportunity to travel, and I don’t know if I will ever get the time now. I don’t suppose you kept a diary? I know you used to when we were novices.”

Akkarin regarded Lorlen speculatively. “I remember a certain novice who used to try to read my diary at every opportunity.”

Chuckling, Lorlen looked down at his plate. “Not anymore. I’m just looking for a travel story to read late at night.”

“I can’t help you,” Akkarin said. He sighed and shook his head. “My journal and all the notes I made were destroyed during the last part of my journey. I have often wished that I had made a copy, and sometimes I have a fancy to return and collect all the information again. Like you, I have responsibilities that keep me in Kyralia. Perhaps when I’m an old man I’ll slip away again.”

Lorlen nodded. “Then I’ll have to look elsewhere for travel stories.”

As Takan returned for the platter, Akkarin began to suggest books. Lorlen nodded and tried to look attentive, but a part of his mind was racing ahead. Knowing Akkarin, there probably was a diary. Had it contained references to black magic? Was it really destroyed, or was Akkarin lying? It might be in the High Lord’s Residence somewhere. Could he sneak in and search for it?

But as Takan served bowls of stewed piorres laced with wine Lorlen knew that such a search would be risky. If Akkarin found even the slightest evidence of an intruder, he would be alerted to the possibility of someone knowing his secret. Better to wait and see if Dannyl discovered anything before trying something that dangerous.

10 Hard Work Pays Off

“Sonea has succeeded in completing the half-year tests, Lord Kiano,” Jerrik announced. “I have moved her to this class.”

Eight pairs of eyes fell on Sonea. The novices were arranged in a half-circle around the teacher’s desk. She looked at each face, trying to read their expressions. None sneered at her, but she saw no welcoming smiles, either.

The teacher was a short, stocky Vindo with sleepy eyes. He nodded to the University Director and Rothen, then regarded Sonea. “Take a seat from the back of the room and join the others.”

Sonea bowed and went to the stack of chairs near the far wall. Picking up a seat, she considered the novices. With their backs to her she could not see their faces and know which might care if she sat near them. Then, as she headed back to the front of the room, a boy looked across at her and smiled faintly. She moved toward him and was gratified to see him slide his chair aside a little to make room.

Rothen and Jerrik had retreated from the doorway. Their echoing footsteps in the corridor quickly faded away. Lord Kiano cleared his throat, looked around the class and resumed his lecture.

The other novices bent over their notebooks, writing rapidly. As the Healer rattled out a rapid string of illnesses and the medicines that should be used to treat them, Sonea quickly pulled out a sheet of paper and began scribbling down everything she heard. She had no idea what she should be taking down, so she wrote every word in a messy scrawl that she suspected she’d have trouble deciphering later. When Lord Kiano finally paused to draw a diagram on a board she was able to cautiously look around at the other novices.

One girl and six boys. Aside from a tall Lan youth, an Elyne and a Vindo boy, the rest were Kyralian—though the boy beside her was unusually short and might be half Vindo. His skin was blotchy and his hair hung in limp strands.

Sensing her gaze he smiled uncertainly, then grinned as she returned the smile. Then his eyes dropped to the page in her hand and he frowned. He turned his notes so she could read them and wrote on the corner of a page.

Did you get everything?

Sonea shrugged and wrote on the corner of her page: I hope so—he talks so fast.

The boy started to write something else, but Lord Kiano then began a detailed explanation of the drawing and both Sonea and her companion realized with a shock that they should have been copying it. For several minutes she scribbled and sketched as fast as she could. Before she had managed to finish, the familiar sound of the midbreak gong echoed through the University.

Lord Kiano moved to stand in front of the class. “Before the next class I want you to study and memorize the names and potency of the plants with mucolytic qualities as detailed in chapter five. You may go.”

As one, the novices rose and bowed to the teacher. The teacher turned to the board and waved his hand. To Sonea’s dismay, the diagram disappeared from its surface.

“How much did you copy?”

She turned. The boy stood next to her, craning his neck to see her notes. Sonea turned the page to show him. “Not all, but it looks like you caught a few things I missed. Can I... can we compare notes?”

“Yes. If... if you don’t mind.”

The other novices had packed away their belongings and were filing out of the class. A few glanced back at her, perhaps curious about their new classmate. She looked at the boy.

“Are you going to the Foodhall?”

His smile faded a little. “Yes.”

“I’ll come with you, then.”

He nodded. They followed the rest of the class into the corridor. The novices walked in pairs, but stayed close enough to suggest they would all keep together. A few glanced at her, but none moved away or made any obvious attempt to snub her.

“What’s your name?” she asked the boy.

“Poril. Family Vindel, House Heril.”

“I’m Sonea.” She searched for something else to ask. “You’ve all been here since last winter?”

“Oh, everyone except me.” Poril shrugged. “I started the summer before last.”

A slow learner. She wondered what was holding him back. He could be strong magically but still have trouble understanding the lessons, or he might simply be too weak to complete the tasks he was given.

Poril started to talk about his family, his brothers and sisters—of which there were six—and numerous other details about himself. She nodded and encouraged him, dreading the inevitable questions about herself.

The class descended to the ground floor of the University, then entered the Foodhall. As they moved to a table Sonea hesitated, but Poril stepped forward and quietly slipped into one of the seats. She sat down beside him, and was relieved that the others accepted this with no protest.

Servants brought trays of food, and all began to eat and talk. She listened carefully as they discussed people she didn’t know, and the lesson. They seemed distracted by her presence, though, and eventually one of the boys looked at her directly.

“You’re from Regin’s class, aren’t you?” he asked, waving a hand toward one side of the room.

Sonea’s stomach turned. So her old class was known as “Regin’s class.”

“Yes,” she admitted.

He gestured with his cutlery. “They gave you a rough time from what I hear.”

“At times.”

The boy nodded, then shrugged. “Well, you won’t get that from us. There’s no time for playing around now. You’ll have to work hard. This isn’t Control exercises anymore.” The other novices nodded.

She held back a laugh. Control lessons? He obviously didn’t know much about her history... or he did and this was just a more subtle kind of jibe than what she was used to.

The talk turned to other subjects. Remembering the boy’s gesture when he spoke of Regin, she glanced to her right. Familiar faces watched her from a few tables away. She wondered what they had thought when she hadn’t appeared for lessons that morning. They had probably expected her to fail the mid-year tests.

It had been hard work. Three months had passed since she had started at the University, and in that time she had completed six months’ work. Next, she had to catch up on the work the winter class had covered, which meant squeezing another six months’ work into three. It was not going to be easy.

Sensing her gaze, Regin looked up from his plate and stared at her. She met his gaze levelly. His eyes narrowed and he pushed his chair back.

A stab of apprehension chased away her satisfaction and she quickly looked away. What did he plan to do? Out of the corner of her eye she saw Kano lay a hand on Regin’s arm. They spoke for several minutes. Regin drew his chair back to the table and Sonea let out the breath she had been holding.

She looked up as a servant offered a platter of food, then waved the woman away, her appetite gone. Regin may not be in her class any longer, but that would not stop him harassing her in the Foodhall, or on the way to and from the Novices’ Quarters. In the corner of her eye she could see him turn to stare at her again. No, she wasn’t rid of him completely.

But she had a chance to make a friend now. Looking at the faces around her, she felt a stirring of hope. She might even become friends with all of them.


Rothen felt a presence at his side and looked up.

“Forgive me for interrupting,” Lord Jullen said stiffly, “but I would like to close the library now.”

“Of course.” Rothen nodded, rising. “We’ll be out as soon as we’ve packed up.”

As the librarian moved back to his desk near the door of the Magicians’ Library, Sonea sighed and closed the large book she had been reading. “I never knew people’s bodies were so complicated.”

Rothen chuckled. “This is just the beginning.”

They packed everything away efficiently. Books were snapped shut, paper was slipped into boxes, pens and ink bottles safely stowed. Rothen returned a few volumes to the library shelves, then ushered Sonea out of the library.

The University was dark and quiet, and Sonea was silent as she walked beside him. Unable to work in his rooms for fear of raising suspicions again, he had suggested they use hers instead. She had shaken her head, pointing out that Regin could easily persuade another novice to come up with a story of suspicious noises or overheard conversations.

Her suggestion of working in the Magicians’ Library was brilliant. The lessons were observed by the librarian, Lord Jullen, and she had access to books other novices needed special permission to use. Regin, like her, could only enter the library under the supervision of his guardian.

Rothen smiled. He had to admire her ability to turn a bad situation to her advantage. As they stepped outside, he surrounded them both with a shield of magic and warmed the air within. Nights were growing increasingly chilly. Fallen leaves skittered over the courtyard, making quiet scraping noises as they touched the pavement. Winter was only a month away.

Reaching the Novices’ Quarters, they walked inside. The corridor was empty and silent. Rothen escorted her to her door, then murmured a farewell. He turned away and heard the door click behind him.

He had taken only a few steps when a figure entered the corridor. Recognizing the boy, Rothen slowed and narrowed his eyes.

Their gaze locked. As Rothen passed, Regin turned his head to maintain the contact, his gaze unflinching despite the disapproval Rothen knew must show in his expression. The boy’s mouth curled upward slightly before he finally turned away.

Snorting softly, Rothen continued out of the Novices’ Quarters. Regin had only harassed Sonea once or twice since she had moved to her new room, and not at all since she had changed classes. He had hoped the boy was losing interest in her. But as Rothen considered the confidence and malevolence in the boy’s gaze he felt a growing certainty that his hopes were in vain.

—Rothen!

Recognizing the sender immediately, he froze in mid-step and almost tripped over.

—Dorrien! he replied.

—I have good news, Father. Lady Vinara has decided it’s time I reported to her again. I will be visiting the Guild soon—probably in a month or so.

Behind Dorrien’s sending were complex feelings. Rothen knew that travelling to Imardin for the sake of formality irked his son. Dorrien could not help worrying how the village he lived in would cope without a Healer for several weeks. There was also a reassuring eagerness in Dorrien’s sending. They hadn’t seen each other in over two years.

But it wasn’t just that. Every time Rothen had communicated with his son lately he had detected a reluctant curiosity. Dorrien wanted to meet Sonea.

—That is good news. Rothen smiled and continued out of the Novices’ Quarters. It’s been too long since you visited me. I’ve been wishing there was some way I could order you home.

—Father! Dorrien’s sending was tinged with half-serious suspicion. You didn’t arrange this, did you?

—No. Rothen chuckled. But I might keep it in mind for the future. I shall have your old room readied for you.

—I’ll be staying for two weeks, so be sure to stock up on that good wine from the Lake District of Elyne. I’m heartily tired of the local bol.

—Done. And bring some raka with you. I’ve heard that the raka from the Eastern District is the best. Sonea is very fond of it.

—It is the best, Dorrien said proudly. All right, raka in exchange for wine. I’ll contact you again when I leave. I must go now.

—Take care, my son.

Rothen felt the familiar presence fade from his mind. He smiled as he reached the Magicians’ Quarters. Dorrien may be curious to meet Sonea, but what would she make of him? Chuckling, he started up the stairs to his room.


“I feel better tonight,” Tayend told the ceiling of his cabin. “I told you I’d get used to it eventually.”

Looking over the narrow passage to where his friend lay, Dannyl smiled. Tayend had dozed most of the day. It had been stiflingly hot, and the evening’s humidity made sleep impossible.

“You didn’t have to suffer so long. Surely a day of seasickness would have been enough adventure for you.”

Tayend glanced at Dannyl, his expression shameful. “Yes I did.”

“You’re afraid of being Healed, aren’t you?”

The scholar gave a quick nod, more like a shiver.

“I’ve never encountered anyone who was, but I’ve heard of it happening before.” Dannyl frowned. “Can I ask why?”

“I’d rather not talk about it.”

Dannyl nodded. Rising, he stretched as best he could. It seemed that all merchant ships had cramped living spaces—which was probably due to the small stature of their makers. Most ships that roamed the seas around the Allied Lands were built and sailed by the Vindo.

It had taken two weeks to sail to Capia, and he had been heartily thankful to greet dry land again when he arrived. Lonmar’s capital city, Jebem, was four weeks’ journey from Capia, and Dannyl was already tired of his surroundings. To make things worse, there had been little wind in the last few days and the captain had informed him that the ship would be delayed as a result.

“I’m going up for some air.”

Tayend grunted a reply. Leaving the scholar, Dannyl started down the passage and entered the common room. Unlike the previous crew, this one kept quiet at night. They sat in pairs or on their own, some huddled in the bag-like beds they used. Walking past, Dannyl climbed the stairs to the door and pushed through to the deck.

Heavy air greeted him. Though it was autumn in Kyralia, the weather had grown warmer as they travelled north. Walking along the deck, Dannyl nodded at the sailors on watch. They barely bothered to respond, some ignoring him completely.

He missed the company of Jano. None of these sailors were at all interested in trying out their conversational or singing skills on him. He even missed the occasional mouthful of potent siyo.

Lanterns kept the ship brightly lit. At night, from time to time, a sailor hung one from a pole and leaned out over the railing to inspect the hull of the ship. Once, Dannyl had asked what the man was looking for, but by the blank look he received he guessed the sailor was not familiar with his language.

All was still tonight, and Dannyl was undisturbed as he leaned on the stern railing, watching the water ripple in the light. It was easy, at night, to imagine the shadow of a wave was a creature’s back sliding through the water. Occasionally over the last two weeks he had glimpsed fish leaping through the waves. A few days ago he had been exhilarated to see anyi swimming with the bow wave, some as large as a human. The spiny creatures had lifted their whiskered noses and uttered strange, haunting cries.

Turning away, he started along the rail, then stopped as he saw that several short lengths of thick black rope were strewn across his path. He frowned, thinking how easily he could have tripped.

Then one of the ropes moved.

Taking a step back, he stared at the thing. It was too smooth to be rope. And why would a rope be cut into short pieces, anyway? Each length of blackness glimmered slimily in the lantern light.

One turned and started creeping toward him.

“Eyoma!”

The warning cry echoed in the night, and was repeated all around. Dannyl looked around at the sailors in disbelief. “I thought they were a joke,” he muttered as he backed away from the creatures. “They were supposed to be a joke.”

“Eyoma!” A sailor hurried toward him, a large pan in one hand, a paddle in the other. “Sea leech. You be away from rail!”

Turning around, Dannyl realized that more of the creatures were behind him. They were climbing onto the deck from all sides. He started toward the middle of the ship, then dodged as one of them made a small leap toward him. Another raised its front half up as if sniffing the air, but he could see no nose—just a pale, round mouth ringed by sharp-looking teeth.

Stepping past him, the sailor swung the pan he was carrying. Liquid spilled out, splashing over the creatures and the deck. A familiar, nutty odor reached Dannyl’s nostrils, and he looked at the sailor questioningly.

“Siyo?”

The creatures seemed as appalled by their dousing as Dannyl would have been. As they began to writhe, the sailor pushed them over the edge of the ship with the paddle. Small splashes followed.

Two more sailors joined the first. They took it in turns to refill their pans from an open barrel lashed to the ship, splash the leeches and sweep them from the deck. It was done with such matter-of-fact efficiency that Dannyl began to relax. When one of the crew accidentally doused another with the liquor, he choked back a laugh.

But the black creatures kept coming, flowing over the deck in greater numbers until it seemed like the night was eating away at the edge of the ship. One of the sailors swore and glanced down. A leech had attached itself to his ankle. It wrapped its body about the sailor’s leg with alarming speed. Still swearing, he splashed it with siyo, then, as it let go and began to writhe, he kicked it off the deck.

Sobering, Dannyl moved forward, determined to help. As one of the sailors stepped forward to push the creatures away, Dannyl caught his arm and halted him. Gesturing toward the leeches, Dannyl focused his will and pushed. The leeches scattered off the deck and splashed into the sea.

He met the sailor’s eyes, and the man nodded once.

“Why the siyo?” Dannyl asked as the man brought another pan. “Why not just push them off?”

“Not siyo,” the man said, discarding the paddle. “Yomi. Left from making siyo. Burns eyoma and stop coming back.”

The sailor continued to splash the liquid down and Dannyl kept pushing the creatures off. Then the ship shifted strangely in the water, listing slightly to one side, and the sailor cursed.

“What’s happening?”

The man looked pale. “Too many eyoma. If big swarm, ship be made heavy. If swarm on one side mostly, ship turn over.”

Glancing around, Dannyl saw that the captain and more than half of the crew had gathered on the low side of the ship, where the deck was black with the leeches. Thinking of Jano’s story, he realized the danger the crew faced. If the ship capsized and they fell into the water, they would not survive long.

“How do you stop them?” he asked, shoving more of the creatures back into the sea.

“Not easy.” The sailor hurried away to draw more liquid from the barrel, then returned to Dannyl’s side. “Hard to get yomi on hull.”

The ship listed farther. Dannyl picked up the paddle the man had discarded and handed it back. “I’m going to see if I can help.”

The sailor nodded. Striding down the deck, Dannyl found his way blocked by scattered sea leeches that had evaded the sailors. He saw black shadows wriggling along ropes, in corners and on the railing. Raising a magical barrier about himself, he walked past them, flinching as they leapt at him. A slight sizzle followed as they met the barrier and fell away. Satisfied, he continued on.

Before he had reached the captain, a familiar voice called from the door to the common room.

“What’s happening?”

Seeing Tayend peering out, Dannyl felt a stab of alarm. “Stay downstairs.”

A leech dropped from a rope and landed near the door. Tayend stared at it in horrified fascination. “Another one.”

“Close the door!” Dannyl focused his will and the door slammed shut. At once it flew open again. Tayend leapt out.

“They’re in here, too!” he cried. Dodging the leech near the door, he hurried to Dannyl’s side. “What are they?”

“Eyoma. Sea leeches.”

“But... you said they were a joke!”

“Obviously, they’re not.”

“What’s the captain doing?” Tayend asked, his eyes widening further.

Looking up, Dannyl caught his breath as the captain strode into the thick blanket of leeches covering the port deck. The man ignored the creatures that wound up his legs. He held the end of a hose in one hand. The other end was attached to a barrel. Leaning over the railing, the captain aimed the hose at the hull and barked an order. A crewman began turning a handle set into the barrel. Soon liquid was spurting out of the hose in the captain’s hands.

Though crewmen splashed yomi at the captain’s legs, more leeches quickly replaced those that fell away. Within a few minutes the captain’s legs were streaked with blood from the eyoma bites. Dannyl started toward the scene, Tayend following.

“Stay here,” he told the scholar.

Looking at the leeches covering the deck between him and the captain, Dannyl hesitated. He took a deep breath, then waded into the slimy blackness. Sizzling surrounded him as they met his shield. He felt the creatures burst as they were crushed beneath his boots.

Reaching the captain’s side, Dannyl touched a leech that had climbed to the man’s shoulders. It fell away, leaving a circle of small puncture marks. The man turned to stare at Dannyl, then nodded gratefully.

“Go back,” Dannyl ordered.

The man shook his head, but not in refusal. “No kill too many or ship go over other way.”

“I understand,” Dannyl replied.

The ship was listing alarmingly now. Leaning over the railing, Dannyl considered the hull. It was almost invisible, only the occasional ripple of light showing in the darkness. Creating a globe light, he sent it down to illuminate the creatures. He caught his breath. The hull was a wriggling mass of leeches.

Gathering power, he released it in a spray of stunstrikes. A shower of leeches fell back into the sea. They would probably survive the stunstrike, but he did not want to risk using forcestrike or firestrike on the hull. As more leeches fell away the ship slowly righted itself, then began to tilt toward the other side.

Crossing the deck, Dannyl leaned over the railing on the other side. Once more he forced the leeches to loose their hold, and the ship straightened again. As he made his way back to the port side, Dannyl noted that the sailors had turned their efforts to cleaning leeches off the deck. One man was roaming about dealing with the ones that had curled around ropes or slipped into cracks or corners.

The sense of danger had passed, but the grim work continued endlessly as the leeches kept climbing onto the ship. Soon Dannyl lost count of the times he had crossed the deck. He refreshed himself with Healing magic, but as the hours passed his head began to ache from the constant mental exertion.

At last the onslaught lessened and dwindled, and only a few sluggish leeches remained. Hearing his name called, he straightened and turned to see that all was lit by the faint light of dawn. A small crowd had gathered around him. The captain raised his arm, then a cheer rose among the sailors.

Surprised, Dannyl smiled, then joined in the cheering. He felt exhaused, but also elated.

From somewhere a small barrel was produced, and a mug was passed from sailor to sailor. As Dannyl accepted the mug, he smelled the familiar tang of real siyo. The mouthful sent warmth spreading through him. He looked around for Tayend, but the scholar was nowhere in sight.

“Your friend sleeps,” one of the sailors said.

Relieved, Dannyl accepted another mouthful of siyo. “Do you encounter eyoma often?”

“Now and then,” the captain said, nodding. “Not like this.”

“Never seen swarm so big,” another sailor agreed. “Good that you passenger. If not with us, we be fish bait today.”

The captain looked up suddenly and said something in Vindo. As the crew moved to the ropes, Dannyl realized that a mild wind had risen. The captain looked exhausted, but pleased.

“You get sleep now,” he suggested to Dannyl. “Helped us good. May need help tonight.”

Nodding, Dannyl made his way to his cabin. He found Tayend asleep, a frown creasing the scholar’s forehead. He paused, concerned to see dark circles under the young man’s eyes. He wished that he could heal his friend, then considered administering a little Healing power while Tayend was asleep.

But to do so would be a betrayal of trust, and Dannyl did not want to risk ruining this new friendship. Sighing, he lay down on his own bed, closed his eyes and gave in to exhaustion.

11 Unwelcome Arrivals

Sweet juice filled Sonea’s mouth as her teeth broke through the skin of the pachi. She held the yellow fruit between her teeth and turned the pages of Poril’s book until she found the right diagram.

“There it is,” she said after taking the fruit out of her mouth again. “The blood system. Lady Kinla said we had to memorize all the different parts.”

Poril looked down at the page and groaned.

“Don’t worry,” she assured him. “We’ll work out some way to help you remember. Rothen has shown me some really useful exercises for remembering lists.”

Seeing his doubtful expression, Sonea smothered a sigh. She had quickly discovered why Poril was having trouble with his studies. He was neither smart nor strong, and tests sent him into fits of terror. Worst of all, he was so demoralized by this that he had given up trying.

But he was also hungry for companionship. Though she had not seen the other novices being deliberately cruel to the boy, they obviously didn’t like him. He was from House Heril, which was out of favor in court for reasons she had not yet discovered. She didn’t think that was why he was avoided, however. He had several irritating habits, the worst being a ridiculous, high-pitched laugh that set her teeth on edge.

The rest of the class ignored her, too. She had quickly realized they were not purposefully avoiding her though, and that they did not dislike her in the way they disliked Poril. It was simply that each had formed a close friendship with another classmate, and had no wish to include a third.

Trassia and Narron were clearly more than just friends. Sonea had seen them holding hands a few times, and noted that Lord Ahrind kept a close watch on the pair. Narron was already determined to become a Healer, and his results in that subject were the best in the class. Trassia was also most interested in Healing, but in a passive way that suggested her interest was due only to Narron’s enthusiasm—or the expectation that women were most suited to Healing.

The only Elyne in the class, Yalend, spent his time with the talkative Vindo boy, Seno. Hal, the stiff-faced Lan boy, and his Kyralian friend, Benon, formed the other pair. Though quieter than the boys in Regin’s class, these four still talked endlessly about the horse races, told unlikely stories about girls in court, and fooled about as if they hadn’t reached the end of their childhood.

Which they hadn’t, she was coming to understand. The children of the slums grew up fast because they had to. These novices had lived their lives in the midst of luxury, and had less reason to mature quickly than their brothers and sisters outside the Guild.

Until they graduated, they were free from family responsibilities, such as presenting themselves at court, marriage, and managing whatever income-producing “interests” in farming or manufacturing their family was involved in. Joining the Guild extended their childhood for an extra five years.

Though Poril was a year older, he was sometimes the most childish of all the novices. His friendliness seemed genuine, but she suspected he was pleased that he wasn’t the novice from the lowest social background anymore.

Regin, to her surprise and relief, had ignored her since she had left his class. She glimpsed him in the Foodhall each day, and occasionally saw his gang gathering in the corridors before classes, but he didn’t attempt to harass her. Even the rumor that had circulated concerning her relationship with Rothen had been forgotten. Teachers no longer eyed her with suspicion, and she rarely heard Rothen’s name whispered as she walked down the corridor.

“If only we knew which parts she’ll ask us to name,” Poril sighed. “The big ones, I suppose—and a couple of small ones.”

Sonea shrugged. “Don’t waste your time trying to guess what she’ll ask. It will take as much effort as memorizing them all.”

A gong rang out. Through the trees, Sonea could see other novices reluctantly gathering their belongings and hurrying toward the University. Like them, Sonea and Poril had spent the midbreak outside enjoying the rare warmth of a sunny autumn day. She stood and stretched.

“After class, let’s go to the library and study.”

Poril nodded. “If you want.”

Walking quickly, they hurried out of the gardens and into the University. The rest of the novices were already seated in the classroom. As Sonea took her seat, Lord Skoran entered the room.

Putting down a small pile of books, the magician cleared his throat and faced the novices. Then a movement in the doorway drew his attention away. All of the class turned to watch as three figures stepped into the room. Seeing Regin among them, Sonea felt a chill of foreboding.

University Director Jerrik looked around the room. His eyes skipped over the other novices’ faces. As they met hers he frowned, then he glanced at the novice at his side.

“Regin has succeeded in completing the half-year tests.” Jerrik’s usually stern voice held a hint of reluctance. “I have moved him to your class.”

Sonea’s stomach turned over. The magicians were still talking, but she could not bring herself to focus on the words. She felt her chest tighten, as if an invisible hand had wrapped itself around her and was squeezing. Her heartbeat grew louder until it roared in her ears.

Then she remembered to breathe.

Suddenly dizzy, she closed her eyes. When she opened them again, Regin was wearing his most charming smile. His gaze moved from the other novices to her. Though his mouth remained fixed in the same wide smile, and not a muscle of his face appeared to move, somehow his expression changed completely.

She tore her eyes away. This is impossible. How could be have caught up? He must have cheated.

Yet she couldn’t see how he could deceive the teachers and still pass their tests. That left only one possibility. He must have started extra studies not long after she had—probably as soon as he had learned what she intended to do. And he had done it in secret, most likely with the help of his guardian.

But why? All his friends were in the other class. Perhaps he thought he would gather another gang of admirers here. She felt a trickle of hope. It was unlikely that even he could break up the pairing that this class was firmly set into. Unless...

Knowing Regin, once he had decided to go to the effort of rising to the next class he would have made friendly overtures to all the novices in it. He would have made sure he was welcome.

Looking around the class, Sonea was surprised to see Narron regarding Regin with a frown. The boy looked displeased. Then she remembered how she had been told firmly that this class had no time for “playing around.”

So perhaps Regin hadn’t befriended her new classmates. Yet he had gone to a lot of effort to rise a level.

Maybe he just couldn’t stand seeing a slum girl do better than him. Fergun had been willing to take great risks to have her expelled from the Guild because he didn’t want lower-class entrants joining. Her success or failure to learn and be accepted would be taken into account if the Guild ever considered taking in members from outside the Houses again. What if Regin was trying to hamper her learning, to ensure she failed and lower-class entrants were never welcomed again?

Then I had better make sure he doesn’t succeed!

She had escaped him once, she could do it again by studying harder and reaching the next class.

Even as the idea occurred to her, she knew it wasn’t possible. It had taken her every night and Freeday to finish a half year’s learning three months early, and she still had to catch up on what this class had covered already in the months before she had joined it. She didn’t have any time left to learn what the Second Years had studied as well.

Perhaps it would be better to let him think he’d won. He’d leave her alone if he thought she wasn’t doing as well as him. She didn’t have to be the best novice in her class to prove that entrants from outside the Houses could succeed as magicians.

If she fell back to the first class she was sure Regin’s pride wouldn’t allow him to follow her. She dismissed that idea faster than the first. The summer class was still under Regin’s sway, even if he had left it. At least her current class wasn’t united against her...

She blinked, suddenly realizing that Lord Skoran’s thin, wavering voice had been the only sound in the room for some time.

“...and in continuing our assessment of the Sachakan War, I want you to find out all you can about the five Higher Magicians who joined the battle at the second stage. They were from countries outside Kyralia, and their aid was gathered by a certain young magician named Genfel. Choose one of these magicians and write a four-thousand-word description of his life before he became involved in the war.”

Picking up her pen, Sonea began writing. Regin may have reached the higher class, but he still had much work to do before he caught up with them. For a few weeks he would be too busy to harass her, and by then she would know if he was going to have any influence over the rest of the class. Without them to support him, it would not be so easy for him to make her the target of his pranks.


“Jebem, halai!”

At the cry, Dannyl looked up eagerly.

“What is it?” Tayend asked.

Dannyl set aside his plate with a grimace. Though dried marin paste was a delicacy, nothing could make stale ship bread appetizing.

“Jebem has been sighted,” he said, rising. Hunching over so he did not knock his head on the roof, Dannyl moved toward the door. As he stepped outside, light dazzled him. The sun hung low over the sea, setting the waves glittering brightly. The heat of the day lingered in the air and radiated from the deck.

Looking to the north, Dannyl caught his breath, then ducked inside the doorway and beckoned to Tayend. Straightening, he moved down the deck to the bow, and gazed at the distant city.

Low houses built of flat, gray stones spread endlessly along the coast. From among them rose thousands of obelisks.

Tayend had appeared at his side. “Big, isn’t it?” the scholar breathed.

Dannyl nodded. The small coastal villages they had passed in the last few days had been made up of houses in the same simple style, with a handful of obelisks rising above them. The houses of Jebem were no grander, but the sheer size of the city was astounding. The obelisks among them were like a forest of needles, and the low sun painted all with a vivid red-orange light.

They watched silently as the ship continued along the coast. A row of rocky outcrops appeared, running parallel to the city like guards. The ship sailed into the gap between. When they drew level to the part of the city where the obelisks were thickest, the ship slowed and turned into a narrow channel. On either side, dark-skinned men hurried to the stone banks. They tossed ropes to the sailors, which were then looped around stout posts on the ship. The other ends were already fastened to teams of gorin. The large beasts began hauling the ship down the channel.

For the next hour the Lonmar wharf-laborers guided the ship along the channel until it reached an artificial marina. Several other ships, some twice the size of their own, rocked gently in the water. As the ship was lashed to posts along the wharf, Dannyl and Tayend returned to their rooms to gather their belongings.

After a brief and formal exchange with the captain, they walked down the gangplank to dry land. Their trunks were handed to four men. A fifth stepped forward and bowed.

“Greetings, Ambassador Dannyl, young Tremmelin. I am Loryk, your translator. I will take you to the Guild House. Please follow me.”

He made a quick, imperious gesture at the carriers and started into the city. Following, Dannyl and Tayend walked along several wharves and onto a wide street.

Dust filled the air, muting the colors around them. The sea breeze was replaced by a stifling heat and a mixture of perfume, spice and dust. Men filled the streets, all well covered in simple Lonmar clothing. Voices surrounded them, but the liquid-sounding words were incomprehensible. Those men they passed stared at Dannyl openly, then at Tayend, their gaze neither welcoming nor disapproving. Occasionally one narrowed his eyes at Tayend, who had put on his fanciest court costume and looked very out of place.

The scholar was unusually quiet. Looking at his companion, Dannyl recognized the now-familiar signs of unease: a small crease had appeared between Tayend’s brows and he walked a half-step behind. As the scholar met his gaze, Dannyl gave him a reassuring smile.

“Don’t worry. It’s unsettling at first, being in a strange city.”

Tayend’s frown disappeared, and he drew level with Dannyl as they followed the translator through a narrow alley. Emerging in a large square, Dannyl checked his stride and looked around in dismay.

Wooden stages had been built all around. On the closest a woman stood, hands bound. Beside her was a man dressed in white, his head shaved and covered with tattoos and holding a whip in his left hand. Another man was striding among the crowd that had gathered around the stage, reciting something from a piece of paper.

Dannyl lengthened his stride to catch up with the translator.

“What is he saying?”

Loryk listened. “The woman has shamed her husband and family by inviting another man into her bedroom.” He waved a hand. “This is Judgment Square.”

Shouts rang out, drowning out the rest of the proclamation. A crowd had gathered around several of the stages. As Dannyl followed the carriers away from the woman, he noticed a young man standing nearby, watching her. The man’s dark eyes glittered with moisture, but his face was set and rigid.

Husband or lover? Dannyl wondered.

The center of the square was less crowded. The carriers crossed and made their way between two stages. The white-dressed men standing on the stages held swords. Dannyl kept his eyes on the translator’s back, but a voice rose above the jeering of the crowd and Loryk slowed.

“Ah... he says: this man has shamed his family with his unnatural... what is your word? Lusts? He has earned the ultimate punishment for corrupting the souls and bodies of men. Just as the sun sets and darkness purges the world of sin, only his death may cleanse those souls he has soiled.”

Despite the heat, Dannyl felt cold spread through his body. The condemned man was slumped against a pole, his expression resigned. The crowd began to shout, their faces twisted in hatred. Dannyl looked away, struggling to hold back a tide of horror and anger. The man was going to be executed for a crime that in Kyralia earned only dishonor and shame, and in Elyne—according to Tayend—was no crime at all.

Dannyl could not help thinking back to the scandal and rumor that had caused him so much trouble as a novice. He had been accused of the same “crime” as this man. Proof hadn’t mattered; once the rumor had started, he had been treated as an outcast by both novices and teachers. He shivered as the crowd roared again behind them. If I’d been unlucky enough to be born in Lonmar, this might have been how the matter ended.

Loryk entered another alley and the jeering faded behind them. Dannyl glanced at Tayend. The scholar’s face was white.

“It’s one thing to hear or read of the strict laws of another land, quite another to see them being enacted,” the scholar murmured. “I swear that I will never complain about the excesses of the Elyne court again.”

The translator continued along another street, then stopped as the carriers entered a low building.

“The Guild House in Jebem,” he announced as they reached the door. “I will leave you here.”

The man bowed and walked away. Examining the building, Dannyl noted a plaque bearing the Guild symbol set into the wall. Otherwise, the building was the same as any other they had seen. Stepping through the open door, they entered a room with a low ceiling. An Elyne magician stood nearby.

“Greetings,” he said. “I am Vaulen, First Guild Ambassador for Lonmar.”

The man was gray-haired and thin. Dannyl inclined his head. “Second Guild Ambassador for Elyne, Dannyl.” He gestured to Tayend, who bowed gracefully. “Tayend of Tremmelin, scholar of the Great Library and my assistant.”

Vaulen nodded to Tayend politely. His eyes dropped to Tayend’s violet shirt. “Welcome to Jebem. I feel I must warn you, Tayend of Tremmelin, that the Lonmar people value humility and simplicity and disapprove of bright clothing, no matter how fashionable. I can recommend a good tailor who can provide you with quality attire in a simpler style for your stay.”

Dannyl expected to see a glint of rebellion in the scholar’s eyes, but Tayend bowed his head graciously. “Thank you for the warning, my lord. I will see this tailor tomorrow if he is available.”

“I have had rooms prepared for you,” Vaulen continued. “I’m sure you want to rest after your journey. We have separate baths here—the servants will show you where. Afterward, you are welcome to join me for the evening meal.”

They followed a servant down a short corridor. The man gestured to two open doors, bowed, then strode away. Tayend stepped inside one of the rooms, then stopped and gazed around, looking lost.

Dannyl hesitated, then stepped inside. “Are you all right?”

Tayend shuddered. “They’re going to execute him, aren’t they? They probably already have.”

Realizing Tayend was talking about the condemned man in Judgment Square, he nodded. “Probably.”

“Nothing we could do. Another country, different laws, and all that.”

“Unfortunately.”

Tayend sighed and sat down on a chair. “I don’t want to spoil the adventure for you, Dannyl, but I already dislike Lonmar.”

Dannyl nodded. “Judgment Square wasn’t exactly an encouraging introduction to the country,” he agreed. “But I don’t want to judge Lonmar too quickly. There must be more to this place. If you saw the slums of Imardin first, you might not think much of Kyralia. Hopefully we’ve seen the worst, and the rest can only be better.”

Tayend sighed, then moved to his trunk and opened it. “You’re probably right. I’ll try to find some plainer clothes.”

Dannyl smiled tiredly. “Sometimes this uniform has advantages,” he said, tugging the sleeve of his robe. “Same old purple robes every day, but at least I can wear them anywhere throughout the Allied Lands.” He moved to the doorway. “If I don’t see you in the baths, then I’ll meet you at dinner.”

Without looking up, Tayend lifted a hand to wave. Dannyl left the scholar to rifle through the bright clothes in his trunk and entered the other room.

He sobered as he considered the next few weeks. After he had dealt with his ambassadorial duties in the city, they would visit the Splendid Temple as part of their research. It was said to be a serenely beautiful place, yet it was the center of the strict Mahga religion that set out the punishments that he had encountered today. Suddenly he wasn’t looking forward to the visit.

Yet they might find information about ancient magic there. After a month stuck in the confines of a ship, he was looking forward to stretching his legs and mind again. Hopefully he was right that the rest of Lonmar could only be more welcoming than Judgment Square.


It was late when Lorlen returned to his office. Taking Dannyl’s latest report from his secure box, he sat down at the desk and read it through again. As he finished he leaned back in his chair and sighed.

He had been thinking about Akkarin’s diary for weeks now. If it existed, it would be in the High Lord’s Residence somewhere. Considering what the diary might contain, Lorlen doubted it was kept in Akkarin’s library with ordinary books. It was probably stowed in the cellar beneath the building, and Lorlen was sure that place was securely locked.

A chill breeze touched his skin. He shivered, then cursed under his breath. His office had always been drafty, something that the previous Administrator had complained of constantly. Rising, he hunted for the source of the breeze as he had often done in the past but, as always, the chill disappeared as suddenly as it had come.

Shaking his head, he started pacing. Dannyl and his scholar companion should arrive in Lonmar soon and they would visit the Splendid Temple. Lorlen hoped they would find nothing—the idea that information about black magic might exist in such a place was appalling to consider.

He stopped pacing at a knock on the door. Striding over, he pulled it open, expecting to receive a gentle lecture about getting enough sleep from Lord Osen. Instead, a dark silhouette filled the doorway.

“Good evening, Lorlen,” Akkarin said, smiling.

Lorlen stared at the High Lord in surprise.

“Are you going to let me in?”

“Of course!” Shaking his head as if to clear it, Lorlen stepped back. Akkarin strolled inside and folded himself into one of the large cushioned chairs. The High Lord’s gaze strayed to Lorlen’s desk.

Following his friend’s gaze, Lorlen caught his breath as he saw Dannyl’s letter lying open. It took all his will to stop himself rushing over and stuffing the pages back into the box. Instead, he crossed the room casually, stopping to straighten a chair, then dropped into his seat with a sigh.

“As always, you find me in a mess,” he muttered. Picking up Dannyl’s letter, he dropped it back in the secure box. After tidying a few more items on the desk, he slipped the box into a drawer. “What brings you here at this late hour?”

Akkarin shrugged. “Nothing in particular. You’re always visiting me, so I thought it was time I dropped in to see you. I knew better than to try your rooms first, though this is a late hour even for you.”

“It is.” Lorlen nodded. “I was just reading some mail, then I was going to finish for the night.”

“Anything interesting? How is Lord Dannyl?”

Lorlen’s heart skipped. Had Akkarin been able to see Dannyl’s signature, or had he recognized the writing? He frowned as he tried to remember what had been written on the exposed page.

“He’s on his way to Lonmar to settle the council’s argument about Greater Clan Koyhmar. I asked Errend to see to it, since he now has a Second Ambassador to deal with Elyne matters while he’s away, but Errend decided to send Dannyl in his place.”

Akkarin smiled. “Lonmar. A place that will either whet the appetite for travel, or kill it.”

Lorlen leaned forward. “What did it do for you?”

“Hmmm,” Akkarin considered the question carefully. “It did give me a hunger to see more of the world, but it also hardened me as a traveller. Lonmars may be the most civilized people of the Allied Lands, but there is much that is harsh and cruel about them. You learn to tolerate their sense of justice, perhaps understand it as well, but by doing so your own beliefs and ideals are strengthened. The same could be said of Elyne frivolity, or the Vindo obsession with trade. There is more to life than fashion and money.”

Akkarin paused, his gaze distant, then shifted in his seat. “And you discover that, just as not every Elyne is frivolous, or every Vindo is greedy, not every Lonmar is unbending. Most are kind and forgiving, preferring to resolve disputes privately. I did learn much about them, and though the whole journey there proved to be a waste of time as regards my research, the experience has proven to be valuable to my role here.”

Lorlen closed his eyes and massaged them. A waste of time? Was Dannyl also wasting his time?

“You are tired, my friend,” Akkarin said, his voice softening. “I am keeping you from your bed with my tales.”

Blinking, Lorlen looked up at the High Lord. “No—don’t mind me. Please go on.”

“No.” Akkarin rose, his black robes rustling. “I was putting you to sleep. We’ll catch up another time.”

Disappointment and relief mingled as Lorlen followed Akkarin to the door. Stepping into the corridor, Akkarin turned back to regard Lorlen, and smiled crookedly.

“Good night, Lorlen. You will get some rest, won’t you? You look exhausted.”

“Yes. Good night, Akkarin.”

Closing the door, Lorlen sighed. He had just learned something useful—or had he? Akkarin might be saying he had found nothing in Lonmar to hide something he had discovered. It was odd that he should suddenly talk of the journey when he had avoided the subject in the past.

Lorlen winced as a cold draft chilled his neck. Distracted from his thoughts, he yawned, then returned to his desk and moved the secure box to its proper place in the cupboard. Feeling better, he left the office and started for his rooms.

He must be patient. Dannyl would find out soon enough whether his journey to Lonmar was a waste of time.

12 Not What They Had in Mind

How had he done it?

Sonea walked slowly down the corridor. In her arms was the box in which she kept her pen, inkwell and unbound folder of notes and fresh paper.

The folder was empty.

Once more she searched her memory. When had she given Regin an opportunity to get to her belongings? She was always cautious, never leaving her notes unattended for a moment.

But in the classroom, during Lady Kinla’s lesson, the novices were often called from their seats to observe some demonstration. It was possible Regin had slipped her notes out of their cover as he passed her table. She had believed such nimble-fingeredness was beyond the pampered children of the Houses. Obviously she was wrong.

She had checked her room thoroughly, and even slipped back into the University to check the classroom late in the night. All the time she had searched, she had known she wouldn’t find the notes, at least not in one piece or before today’s tests.

As she entered the classroom her suspicions were confirmed by Regin’s smug expression. Refusing to show any drop in her composure, she bowed to Lady Kinla and moved to her usual seat beside Poril.

Lady Kinla was a tall, middle-aged Healer. Women Healers always wore their hair bound back in a knot at the nape of their neck, and on Lady Kinla this fashion gave her thin face a permanently severe expression. As Sonea sat down the Healer cleared her throat and looked at each of the novices intently.

“Today I will test you on the lessons we have covered in the last three months. You may consult your notes.” She lifted a few sheets of paper, her eyes flitting across the page. “Firstly, Benon...”

Sonea felt her heart skip as the testing began. Lady Kinla wandered up and down the classroom, threading her way past the novices as she threw questions at them. When Sonea heard her name she felt her heart skip, but, to her relief, the question was easy and she could answer it from memory.

Slowly, however, the questions became more difficult. As other novices began to hesitate and consult their notes before answering, Sonea grew anxious. The air stirred beside her as Kinla walked past her chair.

Then the Healer stopped and turned to stare at Sonea. She took a few steps forward until she towered over Sonea’s desk.

“Sonea,” she placed a fingertip on the table. “Where are your notes?”

Sonea swallowed. For a second she considered pretending that she had forgotten them. But making up such a story would give Regin even more satisfaction, and another excuse came to mind...

“You said this lesson would be a test, my lady,” she said. “I didn’t think I would need to take any notes.”

Lady Kinla’s eyebrows rose, and she regarded Sonea speculatively. From somewhere behind them came a smothered chuckle of anticipation.

“I see.” The teacher’s tone was dangerous. “Name twenty bones of the body, starting from the smallest.”

Sonea cursed silently. Her answer had angered the Healer, who obviously didn’t expect Sonea to be able to remember so much.

But she had to try. Slowly, then with more confidence, Sonea drew the names from memory, counting them on her fingers as she spoke. When she had finished Lady Kinla stared at her in silence, lips pressed into a thin line.

“You are correct,” the Healer said grudgingly.

With a quiet sigh of relief, Sonea watched the teacher turn and continue her meandering among the novices’ desks. Glancing at the class, she found Regin staring at her, his eyes narrowed to slits.

She looked away. Thankfully, she had helped Poril with his notes and could copy them out again for herself. She doubted she’d see her own again now.


A few days after their arrival, the Splendid Temple priests replied to Dannyl’s request to see the collection of scrolls. He was relieved at this break from his ambassadorial duties. Already, the squabbling of the Lonmar Council of Elders was trying his patience.

Lorlen’s reasons for sending a foreign Guild Ambassador to Lonmar were annoyingly valid. One of the Greater Clans had fallen out of favor and fortune, no longer able to support its novices and magicians. The other clans were required to take on the responsibility.

Studying the agreements between the Guild and other lands had been part of Dannyl’s preparations for his role. While the Kyralian King apportioned part of his tax revenue to pay for the needs of Kyralian magicians, and left the selection of entrants to chance, other lands had different approaches. The Elyne King offered a number of places each year and chose applicants with a mind to future political implications. The Vindo sent as many entrants as they could find and afford, which was not many since they had little magical ability in their bloodlines.

The Lonmars were ruled by a Council of Elders made up of representatives from the Greater Clans. Each Clan funded the training of its own magicians. The centuries-old agreement made between the Lonmars and the Kyralian King stated that, if a clan should be unable to finance its magicians, the other clans must equally share the cost of supporting them. The Guild did not want magicians falling on hard times, and turning to unethical uses of magic to survive.

Not surprisingly, several clans were protesting. From what Ambassador Vaulen had told Dannyl, however, they only needed to be gently and firmly reminded of the disadvantages of having the agreement annulled, their magicians sent home, and access to Guild training withheld, and they would cooperate. Vaulen played the role of gentle Elyne persuader, Dannyl was to be the firm, immovable Kyralian.

But not today.

Hearing that Dannyl’s request to the Temple had been successful, Ambassador Vaulen had immediately ordered servants to prepare the Guild carriage.

“Today is a day of rest,” he said. “Which means the Elders will be visiting each other and debating what to do. You may as well do some sightseeing.” He offered them dried fruit softened with honeyed water as they waited.

“Is there anything I should know about the priests before I go?” Dannyl asked.

Vaulen considered. “According to Mahga doctrine, all men find a balance between joy and pain in their lives. While magicians are considered to have been gifted with magic, they are barred from the priesthood. Only a few exceptions have been made.”

“Really?” Dannyl straightened. “In what circumstances?”

“In the past, a few were judged to have suffered greatly and could seek balance by joining the priesthood, but only if they gave up their powers—though they were still barred from the higher ranks.”

“I hope this doesn’t mean that they’ll cause me pain to balance my own gifts.”

Vaulen smiled. “You are an unbeliever. That is balance enough.”

“What can you tell me of High Priest Kassyk?”

“He respects the Guild, and speaks highly of the High Lord.”

“Why Akkarin in particular?”

“Akkarin visited the Temple over ten years ago, and it seems he impressed the High Priest greatly.”

“He has a way of doing that.” Dannyl looked at Tayend, but the scholar was absorbed in eating. Tayend, to his surprise, had returned from the tailor the day after their arrival dressed in typically colorless Lonmar clothes. “They’re very comfortable,” the scholar had explained. “And I fancied owning some as a souvenir of our visit.” Shaking his head, Dannyl had replied: “Only you could turn a statement of humility into an object of indulgence.”

“Your carriage is here,” Vaulen said, rising.

Hearing hoofbeats and the creak of springs outside, Dannyl moved to the door. Tayend followed, wiping the sticky residue from the dried fruit off his fingers with a damp cloth.

“Give my regards to the High Priest,” Vaulen said.

“I will.” Dannyl stepped out of the building. At once he was bathed in the heat radiating from a sunlit wall on the other side of the street. Dust raised by the carriage tickled his throat.

A servant opened the carriage door. Climbing in, Dannyl winced as he entered the suffocatingly hot cabin. Tayend followed, settling onto the opposite seat with a grimace. The servant handed them two bottles of water, then signalled the driver to leave.

Opening the carriage windows in the hope of catching a breeze, Dannyl endured the dust that billowed in, washing it from his throat with mouthfuls of water. The streets were narrow, which kept them as shaded as possible, but the clutter of pedestrians slowed the carriage. Some streets were covered by wooden roofs, forming dark tunnels.

After a few brief conversations, they fell silent. Talking only filled their mouths with dust. The carriage moved slowly, plodding through the endless city. It was not long before Dannyl tired of seeing people and houses that all looked the same. He slumped against the side of the carriage and dozed.

The new sound of pavement under the horses’ hooves roused him. Looking out of the window, he saw smooth walls passing on either side. After a hundred paces or so the corridor ended and the carriage entered a wide courtyard. At last the Splendid Temple came into view.

As with all Lonmar architecture, the building was single-storied and undecorated. The walls were marble, however, the blocks fitting together so accurately it was difficult to make out their edges. Obelisks were set into the face of the building at intervals, each as wide at the base as the building was high, and rising higher than the carriage window allowed him to see.

The carriage stopped and Dannyl climbed out, too eager to leave the stifling heat of the interior to wait for the driver to open the door. Looking up, he drew in a breath as he saw how tall the obelisks were. Placed every fifty paces or so in all directions, they filled the sky.

“Look at them all,” Dannyl said to Tayend quietly. “It’s like a forest of gigantic trees.”

“Or a thousand swords.”

“Or masts of ships waiting to take souls away.”

“Or an enormous bed of nails.”

“You’re in a good mood today,” Dannyl remarked dryly.

Tayend smiled crookedly. “I am, aren’t I?”

As they approached the door to the Temple, a man in a simple white robe stepped out to greet them. His hair was white, contrasting with the rich black of his skin. Bending only slightly, he clasped his hands together, then opened them in the ritual gesture of the Mahga followers.

“Welcome, Ambassador Dannyl. I am High Priest Kassyk.”

“Thank you for allowing us to visit,” Dannyl replied. “This is my assistant and friend, Tayend of Tremmelin, scholar of the Great Library of Capia.”

The High Priest repeated the gesture. “Welcome, Tayend of Tremmelin. Would you both like to see some of the Splendid Temple before viewing the scrolls?”

“We would be honored,” Dannyl replied.

“Follow me.”

The High Priest turned and led them into the coolness of the temple building. They wandered down a long corridor, the priest gesturing as he explained the history or religious significance of features. Long corridors crossed the one they followed. Light filtered through small, narrow windows set just below the arched roof. Occasionally they passed a tiny courtyard filled with wide-leafed plants, surprising the visitors with their unexpected lushness. At other times they stopped at fountains set into the walls to drink a palmful of water.

The High Priest showed them the small rooms where the priests lived and spent their time in study or contemplation. He guided them through large, cavernous halls where prayers and rituals were held each day. Finally he guided them into a complex of small rooms where scrolls and books were displayed.

“Which texts would you like to see?” Kassyk asked.

“I would like to see the Dorgon scrolls.”

The priest regarded Dannyl quietly before he replied.

“We do not allow non-believers to read those texts.”

“Oh.” Dannyl frowned, disappointed. “This is not good news. I have been led to believe these scrolls were available for viewing, and have travelled far to see them.”

“That is unfortunate indeed.” The High Priest looked genuinely sympathetic.

“Forgive me if I am wrong, but you have allowed them to be read before, haven’t you?”

Kassyk blinked in surprise. He nodded slowly. “Your High Lord, when he visited ten years ago, did persuade me to read them to him. He assured me that no one would seek this information again.”

Dannyl exchanged a glance with Tayend. “Akkarin was not High Lord then, but even if he had been, how could he have guaranteed this?”

“He made a vow never to repeat what he had heard.” The priest’s frown deepened. “Or refer to the scrolls to any other. He also said that the information was of no interest to the Guild. Nor was it of interest to him, as he was seeking ancient magic, not religious lore. Are you looking for the same truths?”

“I can’t say, as I don’t know exactly what Akkarin was looking for. These scrolls may be relevant to my research despite being of no use to the High Lord.” Dannyl held the priest’s gaze. “If I make the same vow, will you read them to me?”

The priest considered Dannyl. After a long pause, he nodded. “Very well, but your friend must stay here.”

Tayend’s shoulders slumped, but as he dropped into a nearby chair he let out a sigh of relief. Leaving the scholar fanning himself, Dannyl followed the High Priest through the rooms of scrolls. After a labyrinthine journey, they stepped into a small, square room.

All around were shelves covered in squares of flawless, clear glass. Drawing closer, Dannyl saw that fragmented pieces of paper were pressed under the glass.

“The Dorgon scrolls.” The High Priest moved to the first. “I will translate for you if you will vow on the honor of your family and the Guild to never divulge their contents to anyone.”

Dannyl straightened and turned to face Kassyk. “I swear on the honor of my family and House, and the Magicians’ Guild of Kyralia, that I will never communicate what I learn from these scrolls to any man or woman, old or young, unless my silence will bring harm of the greatest kind upon the Allied Lands.” He paused. “Is that acceptable? I cannot swear otherwise.”

The wrinkles around the old man’s mouth had deepened with amusement, but he answered solemnly. “It is acceptable.”

Relieved, Dannyl followed the High Priest to the first of the scrolls, and listened as the man began to read. They slowly made their way around the room, Kassyk pointing to and explaining diagrams and pictures in the text. When the last scroll had been read, Dannyl sat down on a bench in the center of the room.

“Who would have guessed?” he said aloud.

“No one at the time,” Kassyk replied.

“I can see why you don’t want them read.”

Kassyk chuckled and sat beside Dannyl. “It is no secret to those who enter the Priesthood that Dorgon was a trickster who used his meager powers to convince thousands of his holiness. It was what happened later that has deep significance. He began to see there were miracles within his tricks, and that miracles were in fact tricks of the Great Power. But anyone who read these scrolls would not know that.”

“Why do you keep these scrolls, then?”

“They are all we have of Dorgon. His later works were copied, but this is the only original text that has survived. They were kept and preserved by a family who resisted the Mahga religion for centuries.”

Dannyl looked around the room and nodded. “There is certainly nothing harmful here, or useful, either. I have come to Lonmar for nothing.”

“So said your High Lord, before he was High Lord.” Kassyk smiled. “I remember his visit well. You were polite, Ambassador Dannyl. The young Akkarin laughed out loud when he heard what you learned today. Perhaps the truths you are seeking are more alike than you first thought.”

Dannyl nodded. “Perhaps.” He looked at the High Priest. “Thank you for allowing me to know this, High Priest. I apologize for not believing you when you said they contained nothing of ancient power.”

The man rose. “I knew that you would always remain curious if I denied you. Now you know, and I trust you to keep your word. I will return you to your friend.”

Rising, they started back through the labyrinth of passages.


All of the books on the Sachakan War are taken?” Sonea asked.

Lord Jullen looked up. “That is what I said.”

Sonea turned away and mouthed a curse that would have earned a stern lecture from Rothen.

When the class was set an exercise that involved taking books from the library, an elaborate dance ensued in which they competed politely for the best books. Not wanting to join them, Sonea had tried Rothen’s library, but found he had nothing on the subject. By the time she had returned to the Novices’ Library, there was nothing useful left. That had left the Magicians’ Library, which had apparently been raided, too.

“They’re all gone,” she told Rothen as she reached his side.

His eyebrows rose. “All of them? How can that be? There’s a restriction on the number of books each novice or magician can borrow.”

“I don’t know. He probably persuaded Gennyl to borrow some, too.”

“You don’t know it was Regin’s doing, Sonea.”

She snorted softly.

“Why don’t you have a copy made?”

“That would be expensive, wouldn’t it?”

“It’s what your allowance is for, remember.”

She winced and looked away. “How long would it take?”

“That depends on the book. A few days for printed ones, a few weeks for handwritten. Your teacher will know which volumes are best.” He chuckled and lowered his voice. “Don’t tell him your reasons, and he’ll be impressed by your apparent interest in the subject.”

She picked up her folder of notes. “I may as well go. I’ll see you tomorrow.”

He nodded. “Do you want me to come with you?”

She hesitated, then shook her head. “Lord Ahrind keeps a close eye on everyone.”

“Good night, then.”

“Good night.”

Lord Jullen eyed her suspiciously as she left the Magicians’ Library. It was chilly outside, and she hurried across to the Novices’ Quarters. Stepping through the door, she saw the small crowd of novices in the corridor and stopped. As they saw her their faces split with wide grins. Looking beyond them, she saw the words someone had written on her door with smeared ink. Gritting her teeth, she took a step forward.

As she did, Regin emerged from the crowd. She braced herself for his mocking words, but he suddenly retreated again as quickly as he had appeared.

“Hai! Sonea!”

Recognizing the voice, she spun about. Two figures had entered the corridor, one tall, one short. Lord Ahrind’s eyes narrowed as he saw the writing on the door. He stepped past her, and she heard the denials of the novices behind her.

“I don’t care who did it. You will clean it off. Now!”

But Sonea ignored it all. Her attention had been captured by a familiar, friendly face.

“Cery!” she breathed.

Cery’s grin faded as he took in everything behind her. “They’re giving you a hard time, aren’t they.” It was not a question.

She shrugged. “They’re just children. I—”

“Sonea.” Lord Ahrind returned to their side. “You have a visitor, as you can no doubt see for yourself. You may speak to him in the corridor, or outside. Not in your room.”

Sonea nodded. “Yes, my lord.”

Satisfied, he stalked to his door and disappeared. Looking around, she saw that all of the novices but one had disappeared. She watched the remaining boy wipe the ink off her door. By the sullen look he gave her before he hurried away and disappeared into his room, she guessed he had been merely one of the audience, not the one who had written the message.

Though the corridor was empty, Sonea could imagine ears pressed against doors, listening to her conversation with Cery.

“Let’s go outside. Wait here. I’ll just get something.”

Slipping inside her room, she collected a small package, then returned to the corridor and led Cery out to the gardens. They found a sheltered bench. As she created a barrier of warmth around them both, Cery’s eyebrows rose and he gave her an approving look.

“You’ve picked up a few useful tricks.”

“Just a few,” she agreed.

His eyes darted around, constantly watching the shadows. “Remember when we were in this garden last,” he said. “Creeping through those trees. That’s nearly a year ago now.”

She grinned. “How could I forget?”

Her grin faded as she remembered what she had witnessed beneath the High Lord’s Residence. At the time she had been too eager to get away to tell Cery what she had seen. Later, she had told him she’d watched a magician performing magic, but she hadn’t known it was forbidden black magic. Now, of course, she had promised the Administrator that she would keep the truth hidden from all but Rothen.

“That boy is the leader isn’t he? The one who hid when he saw that magician—Lord Ahrind, isn’t it?”

She nodded.

“What’s this boy’s name?”

“Regin.”

“He been bothering you much?”

She sighed. “All the time.” As she told him of the pranks and jibes, she felt both embarrassed and relieved. It felt good to be talking to her old friend, and satisfying to see the anger on Cery’s face.

He swore colorfully. “That boy needs a good lesson, if you ask me. Would you like me to teach him?”

Sonea chuckled. “You’d never get close to him.”

“Oh?” He smiled slyly. “Magicians aren’t supposed to hurt people, are they?”

“No.”

“So he can’t use his powers in a fight with a non-magician, can he?”

“He won’t fight you, Cery. He’d consider it beneath himself to fight a dwell.”

He made a rude noise. “Is he a coward, then?”

“No.”

“He’s got nothing against giving you some rub, though. You were a dwell.”

“He’s not fighting me. He’s just making sure everyone remembers where I’m from.”

Cery considered this for a while, then shrugged. “Then we’ll just have to kill him.”

Surprised at the absurdity of the suggestion, she laughed.

“How?”

His eyes flashed. “We could... lure him into a passage, then cave it in.”

“That’s all? He’d only have to shield himself, then push the rubble away.”

“Not without using up his magic. How about we cover him with a lot of rubble? A whole house.”

“It would take a lot more than that.”

He pursed his lips, thinking. “We could trip him into a vat of sewage and seal him in.”

“He’d blast his way out.”

“Then we’ll trick him into boarding a ship, then sink it far out in the sea.”

“He’d make a bubble of air around himself and float.”

“Ah, but he couldn’t hold it forever. He’ll get tired, then drown.”

“We can hold a basic shield for a long time,” she told him. “All he has to do is communicate with Lord Garrel by mind and the Guild would send out another boat to rescue him.”

“If we sank the ship a long way from any magicians, he might die of thirst.”

“He might,” she conceded, “but I doubt it. Magic makes us robust. We survive longer than ordinary people—and besides, we’ve learned how to extract salt from water. He wouldn’t go thirsty, and he could catch and cook fish to eat.”

Cery uttered a small gasp of impatience. “Stop it! You’re making me jealous. Can’t you wear him out for me first? Then I’ll give him a good softening.”

Sonea laughed. “No, Cery.”

“Why not? Is he stronger than you?”

“I don’t know.”

“What then?”

She looked away. “It’s not worth it. Whatever you do, he’d get me back.”

Cery sobered. “Seems he gets enough fun out of you already. It’s not like you to just put up with something like this. Fight him, Sonea. Sounds like you’ve got nothing to lose.” His eyes narrowed. “I could do it the Thieves’ way.”

She looked at him sharply. “No.”

He rubbed his hands together. “He hurts my kin, I hurt his.”

“No, Cery.”

His expression had grown distant, and he didn’t appear to be listening. “Don’t worry, I wouldn’t kill them or harm the weaker ones, just scare some of the men in the family. Regin will work it out eventually, ’cause he’ll twig that one of his kin always gets visited by a messenger just after he does something to you.”

Sonea shuddered. “Don’t joke about it, Cery. It’s not funny.”

“I wasn’t joking. He wouldn’t dare touch you.”

She grabbed his arm and turned him to face her. “This isn’t the slums, Cery. If you think Regin will keep silent because he’d have to admit what he’s doing, you’re wrong. You’d be playing right into his hands. Harming his family is a far greater offense than giving another novice a hard time. I’d have used connections with the Thieves to harm another novice’s family. They might throw me out of the Guild for that.”

“Connections with the Thieves.” Cery’s nose twitched. “I see.”

“Oh, Cery.” Sonea grimaced. “I appreciate that you want to help. I really do.”

He scowled into the trees. “I can’t do anything to stop him, can I?”

“No.” She smiled. “But it is fun thinking about dunking Regin in the sea or dropping a house on him.”

His lips curled into a smile. “Sure is.”

“And I’m glad you dropped by. I haven’t seen you since before I started at the University.”

“Work’s kept me busy,” he said. “You heard about the murders?”

Sonea frowned. “No.”

“Been lots of them lately. Strange ones. The Guard are out for the killer, causing everybody a lot of rub, so the Thieves want him got.” He shrugged.

“Have you seen Jonna and Ranel?”

“They’re well. Your little cousin is strong and healthy. You going to drop in soon? They say it’s been a while.”

“I’ll try. I’m so busy. There’s so much studying to do.” She reached into her pocket and pulled out the packet. “I want you to give this to them.” She pressed it into his hand.

He tested its weight, then looked at her in surprise.

“Coins?”

“Part of my allowance. Tell them it’s a little of their taxes going to a better cause—and if Jonna still won’t take it, give it to Ranel. He’s not so stubborn.”

“But why give it to me to deliver?”

“Because I don’t want anyone here to know. Not even Rothen. He’d approve but...” She shrugged. “I like to keep some things to myself.”

“And me?”

She smiled and shook a finger at him. “I know exactly how much is in there.”

He pushed out his bottom lip. “As if I’d steal from a friend.”

She laughed. “No, you wouldn’t. Just everybody else.”

“Sonea!” a voice called.

They looked up. Lord Ahrind stood outside the Novices’ Quarters, his head turning to and fro as he searched for her. Sonea stood up and the magician located her. He gestured imperiously for her to come inside.

“I’d better go,” she said.

Cery shook his head. “It’s strange hearing you call them ‘my lord’ and jumping at their orders.”

She pulled a face at him. “Like you didn’t for Faren. At least I know that, in five years, I’ll be ordering everyone else around.”

An odd look crossed Cery’s face. He smiled and shooed her away. “Go on. Get back to your studies. I’ll try to drop by soon.”

“I’ll hold you to that.”

She started toward the Novices’ Quarters reluctantly. Lord Ahrind watched her, his arms crossed.

“And tell that boy I’ll break his arms if he doesn’t leave you alone,” Cery called, just loud enough for her to hear.

She turned to grin at him. “I’ll do it myself if he pushes me far enough. By mistake, of course.”

He nodded approvingly, then waved her on. When she reached the Novices’ Quarters she looked back. He was still standing by the bench. As she waved he gave a quick signal in the street sign language. She smiled, then let Lord Ahrind usher her inside.

13 Thief!

As she left the Novices’ Quarters, Sonea caught her breath with surprise and pleasure. The sky was a luminous pale blue, streaked with glowing orange clouds. Somewhere behind Sarika’s Hill, the sun was rising.

She had discovered that she enjoyed these early hours, when everything was still and peaceful. As winter approached, dawn had come later each day, and today she was finally seeing it for herself.

Yawning servants blinked at her as she entered the Foodhall, and one wordlessly wrapped up a savory bread bun for her to take away. They were used to her unpredictable appearances now. From there she headed to the Baths. Of all places in the Guild, they had turned out to be one of the safest. Women and men were strictly separated and, to ensure this, a section had been built for each, divided by a thick wall. Neither Issle nor Bina had ever attempted to bother her there. There was nearly always another female magician using the Baths, so the chances for harassment were less.

Regin had discovered quickly that any insult or insinuation he directed at her did not impress his new classmates. As she had hoped, he hadn’t managed to charm them into following him about, either, and his attempt to befriend Poril had been almost comically unsuccessful, as the boy recoiled in fear and disbelief.

At midbreak, when the novices visited the Foodhall, Regin always rejoined his former class. She guessed he was not about to abandon his old gang when his new classmates were not interested in starting a new one. And now that their harassment had begun again, they needed time to plan their moves.

They had only the hours before the first class and after the last to find and torment her. She made sure she was hard to find until the last moments before the first gong. After class, however, the gang usually lay in wait for her and she could do little to avoid them.

Though her classmates did not join in, they never stepped forward to help her, either. And Poril was no deterrent. He stood back, pale and trembling, as she endured Regin’s taunting.

Sometimes she managed to avoid the gang by offering to carry something for the teacher, or asking a question that took most of the walk out of the University to answer. The presence of almost any magician in the corridor gave her an opportunity to escape them. Rothen met her after class sometimes, but she always endured sneering remarks about it the next day.

In the Novices’ Quarters, the gang left her alone. They had pushed through the door of her room one day and started messing up her belongings. A quick mental query to Lord Ahrind asking how to deal with uninvited guests had brought him storming in to demand what was going on. They hadn’t attempted to enter her room again—as far as she could tell.

She had bought a sturdy box with a carry handle to tote her belongings in, tired of having her books knocked out of her hands, her notes set on fire, and her pens and inkwell shattered. And protecting this box with magic kept her shield-holding skills well honed.

As she left the Baths, Sonea noted the identities of the novices around the courtyard. She tightened her grip around the handle of her box as she entered the University and started up the stairs. Stepping into the second-floor corridor, she quickly scanned the faces. A huddle of brown robes had gathered outside her classroom, heads close together. Her stomach sank.

Glancing about, she saw a magician talking to a novice a hundred paces away. Was he close enough to deter any mischief? Possibly.

Walking as quietly as she could, Sonea approached the novices. When she was only a few paces away from the room, the magician suddenly turned and strode away down the stairs. At the same time, Issle looked up and saw Sonea.

“Ugh!” Issle’s clear voice filled the corridor. “What’s that smell?”

Regin looked up and smiled.

“It’s the smell of the slums. Look, it gets stronger the closer you get.”

He stepped in front of Sonea and his attention dropped to her side.

“Perhaps there’s something smelly in her new box, eh?”

Sonea backed away as Regin reached out toward her box. Then a tall, black-robed figure stepped out of the passage beside them and Regin froze in place, his arms still extended.

As Sonea’s momentum brought her out of Regin’s reach and into the path of the magician, she realized she was the only one still moving. All of the other novices in the corridor had stopped, their attention fixed on the magician.

The black-robed magician. The High Lord.

In the back of her mind a voice shrieked: It’s him! Run! Get away! She took a few hurried steps backward out of his path. No, she thought, don’t draw attention to yourself. Behave as he’d expect you to. Regaining her balance, she bowed respectfully.

He continued past without looking at her. Taking her lead, the other novices bowed hastily. She decided to take advantage of the distraction and slipped past Regin into the classroom.

At once she felt the effect of the High Lord’s presence vanish. The novices in the room lounged about in their seats. Lord Vorel was so engrossed in whatever he was writing he did not notice her bow. Taking her place beside Poril, she closed her eyes and let out a long sigh.

In those few moments, with everyone else near-frozen with surprise, it had felt as if only she and the dark figure of her nightmares existed. And she had bowed to him. She looked down at her hands, still gripping the handle of her box. She bowed so much now that she thought nothing of it. But this was different. It angered her. Knowing what he was, and was capable of doing...

Suddenly the room filled with the scraping of chairs as all the novices around her rose to their feet. Sonea followed suit, realizing that the last of the novices had arrived and she hadn’t heard Lord Vorel addressing the class. The Warrior gestured at the door, and the novices began to file out. Puzzled, Sonea followed Poril.

“Leave your books here, Sonea,” Vorel said.

Sonea looked down at her box, then glanced at the rest of the tables to see that the other novices had also left their belongings behind. Reluctantly she returned to her desk and set the box on top of it, then hurried away to catch up with the class.

The novices were talking excitedly among themselves. Poril, however, looked ill.

“Where are we going?” she whispered to him.

“Th-the Arena,” he replied, his voice shaking.

Sonea felt her heart skip a beat. The Arena. So far the Warrior Skills lessons had consisted of history classes, and endless instruction on creating barriers. All were performed in the University classrooms. They had been told they would eventually be taken to the Arena to learn the offensive side of the discipline.

A strange feeling—not quite dread—settled upon her as the class descended the stairs and walked out of the University. She hadn’t been close to the Arena since the day, almost a year ago, when Rothen had taken her to see a demonstration of Warrior Skills as part of his attempt to persuade her to stay and join the Guild. Watching the novices throwing magic at each other had been disturbing. It had brought back unpleasant memories of the day she had thrown the stone at the magicians and first used magic, and how they had unintentionally killed the boy they thought had attacked them.

It had been a simple error, but it had turned an innocent boy into a charred corpse. The lectures on safety, which the other novices seemed to dismiss so easily, always chilled her. She could not help wondering how often mistakes did happen.

Ahead, Regin, Hal and Benon were striding along the garden path eagerly. Even Narron and Trassia’s faces were flushed with excitement. Perhaps the thought of accidentally killing someone from the Houses, or the nobility of another land, might sober them. But would the prospect of killing a former slum girl cause them to pause?

As they reached the wide flat space outside the Arena, Sonea looked up at the eight curved spires spaced around it. She could feel a faint vibration in the air from the magical barrier the spires supported. Making herself walk to the edge, she looked down at the structure. The base was a sunken stone circle covered with white sand. The spires were spaced evenly around it. From their bases, stone steps rose to the level of the garden. To one side was a square portal that allowed access to the inside of the Arena via a short underground staircase.

“Follow me,” Lord Vorel ordered. He started down the staircase, leading the novices through the portal and into the Arena. “Form a line.”

The novices obeyed, Poril taking the last place. Lord Vorel waited until they had fallen silent, then cleared his throat.

“This will be your first lesson in the basic strikes. It will also be the first time you use magic in full strength. Heed this warning: what you do today is dangerous.” He stared at them all, in turn, as he spoke. “We must all use the utmost caution during these exercises. Even at your level you are quite capable of killing. Remember this well. I will not tolerate any foolery. Carelessness will be punished severely.”

A chill ran down Sonea’s spine. I hope the punishment is severe enough to convince Regin that an “accident” isn’t an easy way to get rid of me.

Vorel suddenly smiled and rubbed his palms together eagerly. “I will be teaching you the three basic strikes at this level. Firstly, we’ll see what each of you use instinctively. Regin.”

Regin stepped forward.

Lord Vorel walked backward until he was almost at the edge of the Arena, then raised his hands and made a spreading motion. A glowing disc of half-visible energy appeared in front of him. Stepping aside, he nodded to Regin.

“Gather your power and send it toward this shield.”

Regin lifted a hand and extended it toward the target. A frown crossed his face, then a brilliant bolt of light shot from his hand and struck the disc.

“Good,” Lord Vorel said. “A forcestrike, but with a great deal of wasted energy spent on light and heat. Hal.”

Sonea stared at the glowing disc of magic. Vorel was probably using the shield to detect what kind of energies the novices were throwing at it... but she kept seeing a memory of something else, something that made her stomach twist with dread and nausea.

Again a bolt of energy struck the disc, this time tinged blue. A memory of light and screams flashed through her mind.

“A heatstrike,” Vorel said, then went on to explain the differences between forcestrikes and heatstrikes. A part of her mind was slotting this information away, yet she could not drag herself from the memories...

The crowd running... a blackened corpse... the smell of burned flesh...

“Benon.”

The Kyralian boy stepped forward. The beam that sprang forth from his hand was almost transparent.

“Forcestrike.” Vorel sounded pleased. “Narron...”

Another bolt of power seared the air.

“Forcestrike mostly, but a great deal of heat. Trassia...”

A streak of flames dazzled Sonea’s eyes.

“Firestrike.” Vorel sounded bemused. “Seno...”

The Vindo boy frowned for a long time before a pulse of light leapt from his hand. It went awry and missed the disc. As it struck the barrier of the Arena the air filled with a muted tinkling, like distant shattering glass. Fine threads of energy rippled outward. Sonea swallowed hard. Soon it would be her turn. Soon...

“Yalend.”

The boy beside her stepped forward and struck at the disc without hesitation.

“Sonea...”

She stared at the disc, but all she could see was a boy staring back at her. Fearful, yet not comprehending...

“Sonea?”

She took a deep breath and pushed the nightmare image away. When I decided I would join the Guild, I knew I would have to learn this. These fights are just a game. A dangerous game created so that fighting skills were kept alive in case the Allied Lands were attacked.

Lord Vorel took a step toward her, then stopped as she lifted a hand. For the first time since her Control lessons she consciously reached to the energy inside her. The other novices shifted impatiently.

The image of the boy returned. She needed to replace it with something else, or her nerve would break. As Regin muttered something about being afraid, another figure appeared in her mind’s eye and she smiled. She focused her will and sent out a blast of anger.

What passed for a curse among the magicians could be heard over the clear sound of shattering glass. Sonea felt her stomach turn over. Had she missed the disc?

Ripples of light curved to the top of the Arena’s spires and disappeared. The disc was gone. Puzzled, she looked to Lord Vorel, who was rubbing his temples.

“I did not say you should throw all your strength into it yet, Sonea,” he said. “That was a... combination of... firestrike and forcestrike—I think.” He turned to Poril, who went instantly rigid. “I shall restore the target in a moment. Do not strike until I tell you to.”

He remained silent for several minutes, his eyes closed. Then he drew in a deep breath and set up the disc again.

“Go on, Poril.”

The boy sighed. Lifting a hand, he sent an almost invisible strike at the shield.

“Good,” Vorel said, nodding. “A forcestrike, with no wasted magic. Now, you will all strike again, but this time in full strength. After that, you will all learn to shape your strikes to a purpose. Regin.”

Sonea watched as the novices attacked the barrier. It was difficult to know if the strikes were more powerful, but Vorel seemed satisfied. As it came to Sonea’s turn he hesitated, then shrugged.

“Go on. Let’s see if you can do it again.”

Amused, she drew on her power and let it loose. The disc seemed to hold, then it wavered and disappeared. White light arced up and over the Arena barrier, causing the novices to duck involuntarily. The air shivered with the sound of it, then all fell silent.

Vorel regarded her speculatively. “No doubt your age has given you an advantage,” he said, almost to himself. “Just as Poril’s experience has given him control.” He set up the barrier again. “Poril, show us a forcestrike.”

The boy’s strike was almost invisible. Vorel gestured to the barrier.

“As you could see—or not see—Poril’s strike was economical. There was no excess light or heat. Its potency was directed forward, and in no other direction. You will now try to shape your power into forcestrikes. Regin, you will begin.”

As the class continued, Sonea realized she was enjoying herself. Shaping her strikes was challenging, but easy once she had the “feel” of each type. When Vorel directed them back to the classroom she was almost disappointed that the lesson had ended.

Looking around, she noted the smiles and excited exchanges between the other novices. They hurried up the stairs and filled the corridor with chatter. Entering the classroom, they quietened as they returned to their seats.

Lord Vorel waited until the room was silent, then crossed his arms.

“In the next lesson we will return to the refinement of barriers.” The novices slumped with disappointment. “What you have seen today should show clearly why it is so important for you to learn to shield yourself well,” he said sternly. “For the remaining time before midbreak I would like you to write down what you have learned today.”

A low moan escaped the lips of several novices. As they began to open their notebooks, Sonea reached for the latches of her box. Touching them, she realized she had forgotten to set the magical lock.

Opening it, she breathed a sigh of relief as she found her belongings intact. She lifted out her folder of notes, but as she did something slipped from the pages and fell to the floor with a metallic sound.

“That’s my pen!”

Sonea looked up to see Narron glaring at her. Frowning, she looked down and saw a sliver of gold lying on the floor at her feet. She bent down and picked it up.

A hand plucked the pen from her fingers. She looked up to see Lord Vorel staring down at her. He turned to Narron.

“Is this the pen you said was missing?”

“Yes.” Narron turned to stare at Sonea. “Sonea had it in her box.”

Vorel’s jaw tightened as he turned his eyes back to Sonea.

“Where did you get this from?”

Sonea looked down at the box in her hands.

“It was in here,” she said.

“She stole my pen!” Narron declared indignantly.

“I did not!” she protested.

“Sonea.” Vorel’s fingers curled around the pen. “Come with me.”

He turned on his heel and strode to the front of the class. Sonea stared at him in disbelief, until he turned and scowled at her.

“Now!” he barked.

Closing the box, Sonea rose and followed him to the door, conscious of the eyes that followed her. She glanced at the novices. Surely they didn’t believe she had stolen Narron’s pen—not when it was so clear that Regin had played a trick on her again?

They stared back at her, their eyes narrowed in suspicion. Poril looked down and avoided her eyes. She felt a stab of hurt and turned away.

She was the slum girl. The girl who had admitted to stealing as a child. The outsider. A friend of Thieves. They had seen Regin taunting her, but they had never known about the notes and books he had stolen, or the numerous other tricks he had played on her. They didn’t know how cunning and determined he was.

She couldn’t accuse Regin. Even if she dared to, and risked a truth-read, she couldn’t prove that he had actually done it. She had only her own innocence to prove, and she dared not risk a truth-read for that, for if she did, and the University Director didn’t allow her to choose the truth-reader, someone might learn about the High Lord’s crime.

Vorel paused at the door. “Narron, you had better come too,” he said. “The rest of you finish your notes. I will not return before midbreak.”


As he entered the University Director’s office, Rothen noted the posture of the occupants. Jerrik sat at his desk, his arms crossed and a grim expression darkening his face. Sonea was slumped in a chair, her eyes focused elsewhere. Another novice perched on a stool nearby, sitting very straight. Behind him stood the Warrior, Lord Vorel, whose gaze burned with anger.

“What is this about?” Rothen asked.

Jerrik’s frown deepened. “Your novice has been found to be in possession of a pen belonging to her classmate, Narron.”

Rothen looked at Sonea, but she didn’t raise her head to meet his eyes.

“Is this true, Sonea?”

“Yes.”

“Details?”

“I opened my box and picked up my notes, and the pen fell out.”

“How did it get in there?”

She shrugged. “I don’t know.”

Jerrik stepped forward. “You didn’t put it there?”

“I don’t know.”

“What do you mean?”

“I don’t know if I put it there.”

He frowned. “How can you not know? You either put it there, or you didn’t.”

She spread her hands. “It’s possible it was in with my notes when I put them away last night.”

Jerrik shook his head in exasperation, then drew in a deep breath.

“Did you steal Narron’s pen?”

Sonea frowned. “Not deliberately.”

Having had similar conversations with Sonea himself, Rothen almost smiled. This was no time for wordplay, however. “So you’re saying you might have stolen it accidentally?” he asked.

“How can you steal something accidentally?” Jerrik exclaimed. “Stealing is a deliberate act.”

Vorel gave a snort of disgust. “Sonea, if you don’t deny it, we can only assume you’re guilty.”

She looked up at the teacher, and her eyes suddenly narrowed. “What does it matter? You’ve already made up your minds. Nothing I say will make any difference.”

The room was silent for several heartbeats, then, as Rothen saw Vorel’s face begin to color, he stepped forward and placed a hand on Sonea’s shoulder.

“Wait for me outside, Sonea.”

She walked out of the room and closed the door.

“What am I to make of that?” Jerrik exclaimed. “If she is innocent, why wind us about with these evasive answers?”

Rothen looked pointedly at the novice, Narron. Jerrik followed his gaze, then nodded. “You may return to class, Narron.”

The boy stood. “May I have my pen back, Director?”

“Certainly.” Jerrik nodded to Vorel. Seeing the expensive-looking gold pen that the teacher handed over, Rothen winced. It probably had been a gift to mark the boy’s acceptance into the Guild.

When Narron had left the room, Jerrik looked at Rothen expectantly. “You were saying, Lord Rothen?”

Rothen clasped his hands behind his back. “Are you aware of the harassment Sonea has been receiving from other novices?”

Jerrik nodded. “Yes, I am.”

“Have you identified the leader of these troublemakers?”

The University Director’s mouth twitched. “Are you saying this leader arranged this apparent theft?”

“I’m only suggesting you consider the possibility.”

“You would need proof. As it is, all we have is a missing pen found among Sonea’s belongings. She refuses to deny taking it, and has not accused Regin of planting it there. What am I to believe?”

Rothen nodded in acknowledgment. “I’m sure Sonea would like to have evidence to the contrary, but if she isn’t accusing anyone, then she probably hasn’t. In this situation, is there any point in protesting her innocence?”

“That doesn’t prove she didn’t do it,” Vorel said.

“No, but I was asked to explain her behavior, not prove that she is innocent. I can only vouch for her character. I don’t believe she did this.”

Vorel made a small noise, but remained silent. Jerrik regarded them both, then waved dismissively. “I will consider your words. Thank you. You may go.”

Sonea was leaning against the wall outside, staring at her boots sullenly. Vorel narrowed his eyes at her, but strode past without speaking. Moving to her side, Rothen leaned on the wall and sighed.

“It doesn’t look good.”

“I know.” Her tone was resigned.

“You said nothing of Regin?”

“How can I?” She looked up and met his gaze. “I can’t accuse him, even if I did have proof.”

“Why n—” The answer came to him in a flash. Guild rules. An accuser must submit to a truth-read. She couldn’t risk one. Secrets entrusted to them might be revealed before their time. Disturbed, frustrated, he frowned at the floor in silence.

“Do you believe them?”

He looked up. “Of course not.”

“Not even the slightest doubt?”

“Not the slightest.”

“Perhaps you should,” she said bitterly. “Everyone else was waiting for it to happen. It doesn’t matter what I say or do. It doesn’t make a difference. They know I’ve done it before, so they think I’ll do it again whether I have a reason to or not.”

“Sonea,” he said softly. “What you say and do does make a difference. You know that. Just because you stole out of need a long time ago, it doesn’t mean you’ll do so now. If you had some kind of irresistible stealing habit, we’d have seen evidence of it before now. You should deny it, clearly and forcefully, even if you think no one will believe you.”

She nodded, though he wasn’t sure she was convinced. They both looked up as the midbreak gong rang out. Rothen pushed himself away from the wall.

“Come and eat with me. We haven’t had midbreak meal together in weeks.”

She smiled grimly. “I don’t think I’ll be welcome in the Foodhall for a while.”

14 Bad News

One by one the novices filed past Lord Elben’s table, each picking up a glass jar. Knowing that she would receive hostile stares if she joined them, Sonea waited. To her dismay, Regin was the last to approach the table. Looking at her, he hesitated, then stepped forward and picked up the last two jars. Lord Elben frowned as Regin examined both, but as the teacher’s mouth opened, Regin thrust one of the jars at Sonea.

“Here.”

She reached out to take it, but just before her fingers touched the jar it dropped from his hand, struck the floor and shattered.

“Oh, sorry about that,” Regin exclaimed. He backed away from the glass fragments. “So clumsy of me.”

Lord Elben looked down his long nose at Regin, then Sonea. “Regin, find a servant to clean this up. Sonea, you’ll have to observe this lesson.”

Sonea returned to her seat, unsurprised. The “theft” of Narron’s pen had changed more than just the novices’ opinion of her. Before the “theft,” Elben would have told Regin to give her the last jar, or sent him off to get a new one.

The “theft” had only confirmed what the novices and teachers already suspected. Her official punishment had been to spend an hour shelving books in the Novices’ Library every evening, which had proven to be quite enjoyable—when Regin wasn’t hanging about making the task difficult. The punishment had ended last Fourday, but both novices and teachers still treated her with suspicion and contempt.

Most of the time, she was ignored in class. But when she came too close to another novice, or dared to speak to one, she received cold stares. She hadn’t tried to rejoin them in the Foodhall. Instead she returned to her old habit of skipping the midbreak meal or eating with Rothen.

Not everything had changed for the worse, however. Now that she knew her powers were so much stronger than the other novices’, she had discovered a new confidence. She didn’t need to conserve her strength for the class activities, as the novices had been advised to do, so she kept a strong shield up to protect herself from missiles, shoves or other pranks. This meant she could easily push past Regin and his followers if they surrounded her in the corridors.

Her room door was protected by a shield of its own, as was her window and her box. She was using magic all day and night, yet she never felt tired or drained. Not even after a particularly strenuous Warrior Skills class.

But she was alone. Looking at the empty seat in front of her, she sighed. Poril had injured himself a week before, having burned his hands while studying. She missed him, particularly since he hadn’t seemed to care that she had apparently been proven to be a thief.

“Lord Elben?”

Sonea looked up. In the doorway stood a woman in green robes. She stepped aside and propelled a short novice into the room with a gentle push. Sonea felt her heart lighten.

“I have decided that Poril is well enough now to attend classes. He still won’t be able to do anything with his hands, but he can watch.”

Poril’s gaze went straight to Regin. Looking away quickly, he bowed to Lord Elben, then hurried to his seat. The Healer nodded to the teacher, then retreated from the room.

As Elben began to instruct the class, Sonea’s attention slipped to her friend’s back from time to time. Poril didn’t seem to be paying attention to the lesson. He sat stiffly, occasionally looking down at his hands, which were reddened with fresh scars. When the midbreak gong rang out hours later, he waited until the rest of the novices had left, then rose quickly and hurried toward the door.

“Poril,” she called after him. Bowing hastily toward Elben, she caught up with the boy in a few paces.

“Welcome back, Poril.” As he looked at her she smiled. “Need some help catching up?”

“No.” He frowned and lengthened his stride.

“Poril?” Sonea reached out to grab his arm. “What’s wrong?”

Poril looked at her, then glanced at the rest of the class walking farther down the corridor. Regin was hovering at the back of the group, glancing at them over his shoulder and smiling in a way that sent a chill over Sonea’s skin.

Poril shivered. “I can’t talk to you. I can’t.” He shook her hand off.

“But—”

“No, leave me alone.” He turned away, but she caught his arm again and held it firmly.

“I’m not going to leave you alone until you tell me what’s going on,” she said between gritted teeth.

He hesitated before answering. “It’s Regin.”

Looking at Poril’s pale face, she felt her stomach turn over. He kept looking at the other novices, and she knew he didn’t want to tell her any more. He just wanted to get away from her. “What did he say?” she pressed.

Poril swallowed. “He says I can’t talk to you anymore. I’m sorry...”

“And you’re just going to do what he says?” It was unfair, she knew, but she was burning with anger now. “Why didn’t you tell him to go and drown himself in the Tarali River?”

He lifted his scarred hands. “I did.”

Sonea’s anger turned to ice. She stared at Poril. “He did that?”

Poril’s nod was so slight she almost missed it. She looked down the corridor, but the class had reached the stairs and descended out of view.

“That’s... Why didn’t you tell anyone?”

“I can’t prove it.”

A truth-read would prove it. Did Poril have a secret to hide, like she did? Or was he simply so frightened by the thought of a magician reading his mind he would do anything to avoid it?

“He can’t get away with burning your hands just because you’re my friend,” she growled. “If he threatens you again, tell me. I’ll... I’ll...”

“What? You can’t do anything, Sonea.” His face was flushed now. “I’m sorry, but I can’t. I just can’t.” He turned away and ran down the corridor.

Shaking her head, Sonea followed at a distance. Reaching the stairs, she descended slowly. As she reached the ground floor she heard a low rumbling sound. Looking down the corridor toward the Great Hall, she blinked in surprise.

The hall was full of magicians. They stood in pairs or larger groups, talking. Sonea paused, wondering what had brought so many together. It was not a Meet day, so there must be another reason.

“I wouldn’t draw attention to myself, if I were you,” a voice said at her ear.

Recoiling, she turned to stare at Regin.

“They might decide they missed one,” he said, his eyes bright with glee.

She stepped away from him, puzzled but sure she didn’t want to know what he was talking about. His eyes flashed with delight as he saw her incomprehension, and he drew closer.

“Oh, you don’t get it, do you?” His grin was ugly. “Had you forgotten? Today is that most festive day of the year for slum trash like you. The day of the Purge.”

Realization struck her like a blow. The Purge. Every year, since the first Purge over thirty years before, the King sent the Guard and the Guild out to clear the city streets of “vagrants and miscreants.” The purpose, or so the King claimed, was to make the streets safer by removing petty thieves. In truth, the Thieves were barely inconvenienced by the event; they had their own ways in and out of the city. Only the poor, homeless people were herded into the slums. And, in the case of her own family a year ago, those people who rented rooms in “overcrowded and unsafe” stayhouses. She had been so angry that day, she had joined a gang of youths throwing stones at the magicians, and had loosed her power for the first time.

Regin laughed with delight. Feeling anger rising, she forced herself to turn and walk away. Regin stepped forward to block her path. His face was twisted with triumph and cruel satisfaction, and she felt grateful that novices did not join in the Purge. Then she thought to the future and shuddered. Clearly Regin was looking forward to the day he could use his powers to chase helpless beggars and poor families out of the city.

“Don’t go now,” Regin said, nodding toward the hall. “Don’t you want to ask your guardian how much fun he had?”

Rothen? He wouldn’t... Sure that he was simply baiting her, she turned around. Scanning the faces, she found a familiar one in a nearby group. Rothen.

She went cold. How could he have gone when he knew how she felt about the Purge? But he couldn’t refuse the King’s orders...

Yes, he could! Not all magicians go. He could have refused and let another go in his place!

As if sensing her gaze, Rothen looked up and met her eyes. His attention slid to Regin, and he frowned.

Regin chuckled. Suddenly all she wanted to do was get away. Turning, she strode past Regin out of the University. Regin followed, taunting her all the way to the Magicians’ Quarters, where he finally stopped and let her enter alone. Entering Rothen’s rooms, she was relieved to find them empty. She did not want Tania about right now in case she snapped at the servant out of frustration.

She was pacing when the door opened a short time later.

“Sonea.”

Rothen’s expression was apologetic. She didn’t answer him, but stopped at the window and stared outside.

“I’m sorry, I know this feels like a betrayal,” he said. “I wanted to tell you I was going. I kept putting it off, and I didn’t hear we were to be called out today until early this morning.”

“You didn’t have to go,” she said. Her voice sounded like that of a stranger’s, dark with anger.

“I did,” he said.

“No, you didn’t. Someone else could have gone instead.”

“True,” he agreed. “But that’s not why I had to go.” He drew closer, his voice low and gentle. “Sonea, I had to be there, to do whatever I could to ensure no mistakes were made. If I hadn’t gone, and something did happen...” He sighed. “Everyone was uneasy this time. It may be hard to perceive, but the Guild’s confidence in itself was shaken by what happened last year. Whether that came from a fear of making mistakes, or,” he chuckled, “another magic-wielding dwell, it doesn’t matter. The Guild needed someone to keep an eye on it.”

Sonea looked down. It made sense. She felt her anger fading. Sighing, she looked at him and managed a nod. He smiled hopefully.

“Forgive me?”

“I suppose,” she said grudgingly. Looking down at the table, she saw that Tania had left a meal of savory breads and other cold dishes. Clearly a meal prepared by someone who wasn’t sure when anyone would return to eat it.

“Come and eat,” Rothen said.

Accepting the invitation, she moved to a chair and sat down.


The Guild carriage pulled up beside a plain two-story building. Stepping out, Lorlen ignored the curious and startled looks from the people walking along the street. He strode to the entrance of the First City Guard House and, as a servant opened the door for him, walked through into a narrow hall.

The room was tastefully but not expensively decorated. Comfortable chairs were arranged in groups around the room. It reminded Lorlen of the Night Room in the Guild. A corridor off the hall gave access to the rest of the building.

“Administrator.”

Lorlen turned to see Derril’s son rising from one of the chairs.

“Captain Barran. Congratulations on your new position.”

The young man smiled. “Thank you, Administrator.” He gestured toward the corridor. “Come to my office, and I’ll tell you the latest news.”

Barran guided Lorlen to a door near the end of the corridor. A small, yet comfortable room lay beyond. One wall was lined with drawers, and a desk divided the space evenly in two. Barran gestured to one of two chairs, then, as Lorlen sat down, he took the other.

“Your father said that you’ve changed your mind about the woman we talked about,” Lorlen prompted. “That you now think it was a murder.”

“Yes,” Barran replied. “There have been several more apparent suicides too similar to that one. In each case, the weapon has been missing and there were signs of an intruder. Each victim had hand or fingerprints on the wounds. It is too strange a coincidence.” He paused. “These suicides began a month or so after the ritual murders stopped, almost as if the murderer realized he was attracting attention and decided to change his methods in the hope people would assume suicide.”

Lorlen nodded. “Or perhaps it is a new murderer.”

“Perhaps.” Barran hesitated. “There is something else, though it may not be related. I asked my predecessor if he’d ever seen something as strange as this. He told me that a series of murders has been happening, on and off, for the last four or five years.” He chuckled. “He said this was just the price we pay for living in cities.”

A chill ran down Lorlen’s spine. Akkarin had returned from his journey just over five years ago. “Nothing like this happened before then?”

“I don’t think so. He would have said so, if something had.”

“So the murders were the same?”

“Only in that they followed a pattern for a while, then changed to another. My predecessor suspected that one of the Thieves was targeting a rival group at first. They might be marking their victims in a certain way so their rivals knew who had done the killing. But the victims didn’t appear to have any connections to each other, or the Thieves.

“Then he considered the possibility of an assassin who was building his reputation with recognizable kills. Few of the victims had bad debts or any other obvious reason for their assassination, however. My predecessor could find no common reason for the deaths, just as I cannot find one now.”

“Not even simple robbery?”

Barran shook his head. “A few victims were robbed, but not all.”

“Witnesses?”

“From time to time. Their descriptions vary. One detail was common, however.” Barran’s eyes brightened. “The murderer wears a ring with a large red gem.”

“Really?” Lorlen frowned. Had he ever seen Akkarin wearing a ring? No. Akkarin never wore jewelry. That did not mean he couldn’t be slipping a ring on his finger when out of sight. But why would he do that?

Lorlen sighed and shook his head. “Was there any sign these victims were killed with magic?”

Barran smiled. “Father would find that very exciting, but no. There are some strange aspects to some of the murders, but no sign of strike burns, or anything that we haven’t found an ordinary explanation for.”

Of course, a death through black magic wouldn’t leave any signs that Barran would recognize. Lorlen wasn’t even sure there were signs any magician could recognize. He should, however, get as many details as possible.

“What else can you tell me?”

“Do you want the details of each murder?”

“Yes.”

Barran gestured to the wall of drawers. “I’ve had all the records of strange serial murders moved into here. There are a lot to cover.”

Lorlen regarded the drawers with dismay. So many...

“The most recent ones, then?”

Barran nodded. He moved to the wall and drew out a large folder from one of the drawers.

“It is good to know the Guild is willing to take an interest in matters like these,” he said.

Lorlen smiled. “My interest is mainly personal, but if there is anything the Guild can do, let me know. Otherwise, I’m sure the investigation is in the hands of those most qualified to tackle it.”

Barran smiled wryly. “I hope so, Administrator. I certainly hope so.”


Above the curving barrier of the Arena dark gray clouds slowly rolled toward the North Quarter. The trees in the gardens lashed back and forth as the wind caught their branches. The limbs had darkened as the cold season approached, but the last few leaves that clung to them were bright red and yellow.

Inside the Arena, the air was still. The barrier protected it from the wind, but not the cold. Sonea resisted the desire to wrap her arms around herself and press the layers of woollen underclothes closer to her body. Lord Vorel had ordered them to drop any existing shields, including any shield for warmth.

“Remember these laws of magic,” he called. “One: a shield under attack takes more effort to hold against a strike, than the strike used against it. Two: a curved or altered strike path takes more effort than a straight one. Three: light and heat travel faster and easier than force, so a forcestrike takes more effort than a firestrike.”

Lord Vorel stood in front of the class with his legs braced and his arms akimbo. He looked at Sonea.

“Strikes are easy. That’s why it’s so common for magicians to overdo them. That’s also why shields are the most important skill of a Warrior, and why novices spend most of their time practicing them. Remember the rules of the Arena. Once your outer shield has fallen you have lost the battle. We don’t need any more proof than that.”

Sonea shivered, and knew it was not entirely from the cold. This would be the first lesson in which the novices would fight each other. All the warnings Vorel had issued ran through her mind. She looked at the faces of the other novices.

Most looked flushed and excited, but Poril was as white as snow. Since she and Poril always paired off for class exercises, Lord Vorel would probably put them against each other. She resolved to be careful and to take it easy on her former friend.

“You will be paired off initially according to strength,” Vorel told them. “Regin, you will be fighting Sonea. Benon, you will be fighting Yalend. Narron will fight Trassia. Hal, Seno and Poril will take turns.”

Sonea felt her blood turn to ice. He paired me with Regin!

But it made sense. They were the two strongest novices in the class. Suddenly she wished she had seen this coming and had pretended to be weaker than she really was.

No, I must not think this way. Vorel had told them many times that a battle was already lost if a magician began it convinced of defeat. I will defeat Regin, she told herself. I am stronger. It will be my revenge for Poril’s injuries.

It wasn’t easy to hold onto that determination as Lord Vorel called her forward to stand next to Regin. He placed a hand on her shoulder and she felt his magic surround her as he created an inner shield. A second Warrior, Lord Makin, shielded Regin.

“The rest of you move outside,” he ordered. As the novices obediently filed through the passage, Sonea forced herself to meet Regin’s gaze. His eyes were bright and the edge of his lips curled up into a sly smile.

“Now,” Vorel said as the novices sat down on the stairs outside the Arena. “Take your positions.”

Swallowing hard, Sonea moved to one side of the Arena. Regin strolled to the other and turned to face her. Vorel and Makin backed away to the edge and Sonea sensed them creating shields around themselves. Her heart was beating quickly.

Vorel looked from her to Regin, then made a quick gesture.

“Begin.”

Sonea threw up a strong shield and braced herself, but the barrage of strikes she expected didn’t come. Regin stood with his weight resting on one leg and his arms crossed. Waiting.

Sonea narrowed her eyes. There was supposed to be some significance to the first strike, and what it revealed of the character of the combatant. Looking closer, she realized that Regin didn’t even have a shield raised. He shifted his weight, drummed the fingers of one hand against his arm, tapped his foot, then looked at the teacher questioningly.

Sonea risked a glance at Lord Vorel. The Warrior was watching intently, apparently unperturbed by the lack of fighting.

Regin sighed loud enough that even the novices outside the Arena could hear it. Then he yawned. Sonea smothered a smile. This wasn’t a battle of magic, it was a battle to see who lost patience first.

She placed her hands on her hips, then looked up at the novices, no longer concerned about keeping her attention on Regin. Some were watching intently, others looked puzzled or bored. She looked at the teacher again. Lord Vorel met her gaze with a cold stare.

Perhaps she could lure Regin into striking first. Perhaps if I drop my shield...

Cautiously, she let her protective outer barrier dissolve. Immediately the world was ablaze with white fire. The hasty shield she threw up to repel the strikes held for a few seconds, then wavered and collapsed. Heat prickled her skin where Regin’s magic met Vorel’s inner shield.

“Halt!”

The strikes vanished, leaving dark spots in Sonea’s vision. She blinked at Lord Vorel as he strode forward to stand in the center of the Arena.

“Regin is victor,” he announced. A weak cheer came from the other novices. Sonea felt her face warming as Regin bowed graciously.

“Sonea.” Lord Vorel turned to her. “Dropping your shield is inadvisable unless you are skilled at raising it again quickly. If you intend to use this strategy again you should practice your defense more. You may both leave. Benon and Yalend will be next.”

Sonea bowed, then strode toward the portal as quickly as she could. As she entered the passage a gloom settled over her. It’s only the first battle, she told herself. She couldn’t expect to win all the time, especially not against Regin, whose guardian was, after all, a Warrior.

If they were always paired by strength, she would have to fight Regin in every lesson. It was clear already that Regin preferred the Warrior Skills discipline, and she’d heard Hal saying something about Regin having private lessons. Since she had no real desire to become a Warrior or have extra lessons, she was sure he was always going to be better at it than her.

Vorel had said they’d be paired off by strength initially, however. If pairings changed according to skill and talent, and she proved less skilled than Regin, Vorel would match her against one of the other novices.

That meant she had two choices: try to do well and eventually end up fighting Regin all the time, or let herself fail so she could avoid him.

Sighing, Sonea clomped up the stairs and joined the novices sitting on the steps surrounding the Arena. Either way, she was probably going to suffer many more humiliating defeats. Wistfully, she thought of the Dome, the old ball-like stone structure next to the Novices’ Quarters. Before the Arena was constructed, novices had been trained within it. The thick walls had protected outsiders from stray strikes loosed by the combatants within, yet had restricted the view of the battle to teacher and student. While it was an airless, oppressive room, at least it had been private.

Watching Benon and Yalend start their bout, Sonea quickly grew bored. She couldn’t see how these lessons, with all their rules, could prepare magicians for real war. No, these Warriors spent their entire lives indulging in a dangerous game when their magic could be put to better uses—like Healing.

She shook her head. When the time came to choose a discipline, she knew she would not be taking the red robes.

15 A Surprise Attack

As soon as Sonea stepped into the classroom she felt a difference, like a strange current of magic in the air. She hesitated in the doorway, her relief at having evaded Regin’s gang evaporating.

Lord Kiano looked up, his attention snapping to her with a peculiar eagerness as if she was a welcome distraction.

“There will be no classes today, Sonea.”

She stared at the teacher in surprise.

“No classes, my lord?”

Kiano hesitated. A hiss brought her attention to the center of the room. Only four novices had arrived before her. Benon was holding his head in his hands. Trassia and Narron had moved their chairs beside him. Regin sat quietly behind them, his eyes flat and expressionless for once. Trassia was staring at Sonea with accusing eyes.

“A novice has died,” Kiano explained. “Shern.”

Sonea frowned, remembering the novice from the summer class whose powers had felt so strange. Died? Questions sprang into her mind. How? When?

“Oh, just go away,” Trassia growled. Startled by the girl’s outburst, Sonea stared at her.

“He was Benon’s cousin,” Kiano told her in a low voice.

Trassia glared back. Slowly, understanding came. By asking why the class had been cancelled, Lord Kiano had been forced to speak of Shern’s death in front of Benon. Sonea felt her face heating. As Narron looked up at her and scowled, she backed out of the room and fled.

She stopped running after only a few steps as anger and frustration caught up with her. How could she possibly have known that Shern was dead, or that Benon was his cousin? Asking why the class had been cancelled was a perfectly reasonable question.

Wasn’t it?

Her thoughts returned to Shern. When she searched her feelings she could find no more than a mild sadness. Shern had never even spoken to her, or anyone. In fact, the entire summer class had ignored him during the few weeks he had attended the University.

As she reached the end of the staircase she saw that Rothen was climbing toward her, and felt a surge of relief.

“There you are,” he said. “You’ve heard?”

“They cancelled classes.”

“Yes.” He nodded. “They always do when this happens. I went to find you in your room, but you weren’t there. Come and have a hot drink with me.”

Walking beside him, Sonea remained silent. It seemed remarkable that the Guild would close the University because of the death of a novice who had barely spent more than a few weeks there. But since all of the novices, apart from her, were from the Houses, the boy had probably been related to several novices and magicians.

“Shern was in your first class, wasn’t he?” Rothen asked as they entered his guestroom.

“Yes.” Sonea hesitated. “Can I ask what happened to him?”

“Of course.” Rothen collected a pot and cups from a side table, then brought out two jars from a cupboard. “Do you remember what I told you about Control failing when a magician dies?”

“Any unused magic is let loose, and consumes the body.”

Rothen nodded. He set down the crockery and jars. “Shern lost Control of his magic.”

Sonea felt a chill run down her spine. “But he passed the Second Level.”

“He did, but not well or completely. His mind was never stable enough.” Rothen shook his head. “Such a state is rare, but it does sometimes occur. You see, when children are found to have the potential for magic we also test them for problems like this. Sometimes they simply don’t have the mental strength or stability to Control magic.”

“I see,” Sonea said, nodding. Rothen poured water from a jug into the pot, and added sumi leaves from one of the jars. Reaching for the other jar, Sonea mixed raka powder with water and heated the mix with a little magic.

“Unfortunately, some people develop mental instability when they grow older,” Rothen continued, “or when their magic is released. By then it is too late. Sooner or later they lose the Control they have been taught—usually in their first few years. Shern started to show signs of instability months ago. The Guild took him away from the city to a place we had built for such novices. We try to keep them calm and happy, and they are treated by Healers who are well versed in the problem. But no one has ever found a cure, and any binding we place on their powers doesn’t seem to hold for long.”

Sonea shivered. “When I first saw him I thought his presence was strange.”

Rothen frowned. “You sensed the instability that early? No one else did. I must tell this to—”

“No!” Sonea’s heart lurched. If Rothen told anyone that she had sensed something wrong with Shern, the other novices would have something else to blame her for. “Don’t. Please.”

Rothen regarded her speculatively. “Nobody is going to look on you badly for not saying anything. You couldn’t possibly have understood what you were sensing.”

She held his eyes. Rothen sighed. “All right. I suppose it doesn’t matter now.” He placed his hands around the pot. At once steam began to drift from the funnel. “How do you feel about all of this, Sonea?”

She shrugged. “I didn’t know him.” She then told him what had happened when she walked into the classroom. “It’s as if it was all my fault.”

Rothen frowned as he poured himself a cup of the brewed sumi. “They probably snapped at you because you interrupted at a bad time. Don’t worry about what they said. By tomorrow they will have forgotten about it.”

“So what am I going to do today?” she wondered aloud.

Rothen paused to sip his drink, then smiled. “I thought we might make a few plans for Dorrien’s visit.”


The captain of the Anyi had been delighted when Dannyl asked if he was headed for the Vin Islands. At first Dannyl had assumed the man was eager to see his homeland, but grew suspicious when the captain insisted that Dannyl and Tayend move into his own cabin. From what he knew of Vindo sailors, it should take more than homesickness or respect for the Guild to motivate a captain to give up his own space.

The evening after they left, Dannyl had discovered the true reason for the captain’s enthusiasm.

“Most ships to Kiko Town go to Capia first,” the captain told them, over a generous meal. “This way much faster.”

“Why don’t they sail straight to Kiko Town?” Tayend asked.

“Bad men live on Upper Islands of Vin.” The captain scowled. “They rob ships, kill crew. Dangerous people.”

“Oh.” Tayend looked at Dannyl. “And we’re going to sail past these islands?”

“No danger this time.” The captain smiled at Dannyl. “We have magician on board. Show Guild flag. They no dare rob us!”

Remembering the conversation, Dannyl smiled to himself. He suspected that merchants occasionally risked this route anyway, protecting themselves by displaying the Guild flag even when they didn’t have a magician on board. The pirates might have worked this out, too, and he wouldn’t have been surprised if a Guild uniform, real or copied, was kept in a chest somewhere for the days when a flag wasn’t enough to keep pirates away.

He had been too relieved to be leaving Lonmar to care. The dispute with the Council of Elders had taken over a month of fussing and arguing to settle. While the duties he would attend to in Vin were minor, he wondered if they, too, would turn out to be more trying than they appeared.

As the distance from Lonmar lengthened and the crew had grown increasingly tense and watchful, Dannyl had realized the threat of pirates was real. From the overheard conversations that Tayend translated, Dannyl guessed that an encounter with pirates was not a risk, but a certainty. It was a little disconcerting to know that these men believed their lives depended on his presence on the ship.

He looked at Tayend, lying on the second narrow bed. The scholar was pale and thin. Bouts of seasickness had taken their toll on his health. Despite weakness and obvious discomfort, Tayend still refused to let Dannyl heal him.

So far, their journey had not been the pleasant adventure Tayend had hoped for. Dannyl knew the scholar had been relieved to leave Lonmar, too. When they reached Kiko Town, he decided, they would spend a week or two resting. The Vindo were known for their warmth and hospitality. Hopefully they would make up for the heat and strangeness of Lonmar, and Tayend would regain his strength and enthusiasm for travelling.

Two small windows offered a glimpse of the sea on either side. The sky was a dusky late-afternoon blue, clear of clouds. Moving closer, Dannyl saw the distant shadow of islands dotting the horizon on one side—and two large boats.

Hearing a yawn, he glanced at Tayend. The scholar was sitting up, stretching.

“How are you feeling?” Dannyl asked.

“Better. What’s it like outside?”

“Quite pleasant, from the looks.” The boats were smaller than the Anyi. They skimmed over the waves, coming closer rapidly. “I think we’ll have some company before dinner.”

Tayend braced himself against the cabin wall and made his way to Dannyl’s side. He peered through the window.

“Pirates?”

Hasty footsteps approached the door of the cabin, followed by several rapid knocks.

“I see them,” Dannyl called.

Tayend slapped him on the shoulder. “Time to be the hero, my magician friend.”

Dannyl gave Tayend a withering look before opening the door and stepping into the corridor beyond. The youngest of the sailors, a boy of perhaps fourteen years, beckoned wildly.

“Come out! Be quick!” he said, his eyes wide.

Following the boy, Dannyl made his way through the common room and stepped out onto the deck. Locating the captain at the stern of the ship, he made his way across ropes and up a short flight of stairs to join the man.

“Bad men,” the captain said, pointing.

The boats were less than two hundred paces away. Dannyl glanced up at the Anyi’s mast to see the Guild flag snapping in the wind. Looking around the deck, he saw that all of the crew, even the boy, carried knives or short, crudely made swords. A few held bows, all loaded and already aimed at the approaching ships.

Tayend made a small noise of disgust. “The crew doesn’t seem to have much confidence in you,” he murmured.

“They’re not taking any chances,” Dannyl replied. “Would you?”

“You’re our hero and protector. I know you’ll save us.”

“Must you keep saying that?”

Tayend chuckled. “I only want you to feel needed and appreciated.”

The lead boat did not slow as it neared the Anyi. Concerned that the pirates intended to ram the ship, Dannyl moved to the railing, ready to turn the boat’s bow. It swung about at the last moment, sails suddenly turning so that the boat was sailing alongside the Anyi.

Stocky, muscular men crowded these smaller vessels. Large shields were held up toward the ship, ready for a rain of missiles. Between them, Dannyl caught the glint of sunlight on blades. Two men held coiled ropes, weighted at one end with grappling hooks.

The men he could see were darker and taller than the average Vindo, suggesting a mix of Vindo and Lonmar blood. All were staring at him, their expressions guarded. One or two glanced at a man at the prow of the boat. This, Dannyl guessed, must be their leader.

As the second boat drew up next to the ship, the man raised a hand and called out in the Vindo language. Tayend made a small, strangled noise, but the crew of the Anyi remained silent. Dannyl glanced at the captain.

“What did he say?”

The captain cleared his throat. “He ask how much you sell your pretty friend for. Say he make profit selling as slave in the West.”

“Really?” Dannyl glanced at Tayend. “What do you think? Fifty gold?”

Tayend turned to glare at Dannyl.

The captain chuckled. “I not know right price for man slaves.”

Grinning, Dannyl shook his head. “Neither do I. Tell the pirate my friend is not for sale. Tell him,” Dannyl turned to regard the pirate, “that he cannot afford the cargo on this ship.”

The captain repeated the words in Vindo. The pirate smiled, then raised a hand to signal to the other boat. Men hurried to ropes and pulleys, and soon the vessels had pulled away from the ship and were moving away rapidly.

The captain took a step toward Dannyl. “You kill now,” he said urgently. “Before they get away.”

Dannyl shook his head. “No.”

“But pirate bad people. Always rob ships. They kill. They take slaves.”

“They didn’t attack us,” Dannyl replied.

“You kill them, you make sea safer.”

Dannyl turned to face the captain. “Killing the men on one or two boats won’t make any difference. Others will replace them. If the Vindo people want magicians to remove the pirates from these islands, they must arrange it with the Guild. By law, I can only use my powers in defense unless under direct command from my King.”

The captain lowered his eyes and moved away. Dannyl heard the man muttering in his own language before ordering the crew back to their duties. Several of the sailors looked displeased, but returned to their work without complaint.

“They’re not the only ones disappointed by your performance,” Tayend said.

Dannyl regarded his friend speculatively. “You also think I should have killed them?”

Tayend narrowed his eyes at the retreating pirates. “I wouldn’t have protested.” Then he shrugged. “But mostly I was hoping for a little display of magic. Nothing too fancy. Just some sparks and fire.”

“Sparks and fire?”

“Yes. Maybe a little waterspout.”

“Sorry to disappoint you,” Dannyl replied dryly.

“And what was all that about selling me to slavers—and for only fifty gold! How insulting!”

“I’m sorry. Would a hundred gold have been more appropriate?”

“No! And you don’t sound particularly sorry.”

“Then I apologize for failing to be convincing in my apology.”

Tayend rolled his eyes. “Enough! I’m going inside.”


Sonea hugged her box of notes to her chest and sighed. It was growing dark rapidly. The sunlight had streaked the forest with long shadows when she had set out, but only a misty half-light remained now, making it difficult to distinguish the edges of things. She resisted an urge to create a light, knowing that it would make her all too easy to find.

A twig snapped nearby.

She stopped and stared through the trees. In the distance the lights of the Healers’ Quarters could be seen flickering through the trunks. She saw no movement, heard no sound.

Releasing the breath she had been holding, she started walking again.

A few weeks earlier, Lord Kiano had taken the class to the fields and glass-roofed houses beyond the Healers’ Quarters, where medicinal plants were grown. He had shown them several species, telling them how to identify each plant. Afterward, he had told them that, each week, he would select a novice to accompany him to the fields after the class, where he would test them on their knowledge.

That afternoon had been her turn. After the test, he had dismissed her, leaving her to return to the Novices’ Quarters on her own. Knowing that Regin wouldn’t miss an opportunity to waylay her out of the sight of the magicians, she had lingered, pretending to be interested in examining the plants, in the hope that she could follow Kiano back. But when the teacher had begun a lazy conversation with a gardener she realized she would be waiting a long time.

So she decided to try her other plan. Guessing that Regin would be waiting for her on the usual path, she had cut through the forest, hoping to circle around the Healers’ Quarters to the path that led to the front of the University.

A crunch to her left brought her to a stop again. She felt her blood turn cold as she heard a smothered laugh and knew her plan had failed.

“Good evening, Sonea.”

Spinning around, she saw a familiar silhouette among the trees. She willed a globe light into existence, and the darkness shrank back. Regin stopped, a smile spreading across his face as two more figures appeared beside him: Issle and Alend. Hearing sounds all around, Sonea saw Gennyl, Vallon and Kano emerging from the shadows.

“Nice night for a walk in the forest,” Regin observed, looking around. “So quiet. Peaceful. No one to interrupt us.” He stepped closer. “The teachers aren’t giving you special treatment anymore, are they? Such a shame. It really isn’t fair that we get extra attention and you don’t. So I thought I’d give you some lessons myself.”

The sound of snow crunching under boots told Sonea that the novices behind her were drawing close. She strengthened her shield but, to her surprise, they moved around her to stand behind Regin.

“Hmmm,” Regin continued. “Perhaps I could teach you some of what Lord Balkan has shown me.” He glanced at the others and nodded. “Yes, I think you’d find that interesting.”

Sonea’s mouth went dry. She had known Regin was taking extra classes in Warrior Skills, but not that he was learning under Balkan, the Head of that discipline. As Regin raised his palms, the other novices moved closer to their leader and placed their hands on his shoulders.

“Defend yourself,” Regin said, mimicking Lord Vorel’s commanding tone.

Throwing more magic into her shield, she blocked the flow of energy that flashed from each of Regin’s palms. The strikes were weak, but rapidly grew in force until they were stronger than anything she had faced in the Arena. Surprised, she poured more and more magic into her shield.

How was this possible? She had fought Regin enough times to know his strength. He had always been much weaker than her. Had he been holding back, just waiting for a moment to surprise her with his real strength?

Regin’s face stretched into an ugly grin, and he took a step toward her. Abruptly, the attack weakened, then stopped as he paused to glare at the others. They hurriedly stretched forward to regain their hold on his shoulder.

As they touched Regin again, he resumed his attack. She considered what this meant. Obviously the others were lending him their power. She hadn’t heard that it was possible, but there was plenty about the Warrior Skills she didn’t know—or might have missed during Vorel’s long and boring lectures.

Her senses rang with the magic that filled the air. The snow between them had melted into sizzling puddles. So much power... the thought of what was being directed at her was appalling, and set her heart racing. If she failed to hold her shield, the consequences would be brief—and fatal. He was taking such a risk... or was he?

What if he means to kill me?

Surely not. He would be expelled from the Guild.

Yet when she pictured Regin facing the assembled magicians in the Guildhall, she could easily hear what they’d say. An unfortunate accident. He wasn’t to blame for her poor skills. Four weeks’ work in the library, and don’t let it happen again.

Anger replaced her fear. As she regarded the novices, she saw that they were glancing at each other doubtfully. Regin was no longer grinning, but frowning with concentration. He growled something, and the others protested in reply. Whatever they were doing, it wasn’t having the effect they’d expected.

Was this, then, as strong as they could be when combined? She smiled. She was holding them off easily. He had underestimated her—and if the globe light floating above them was any indication, she still had strength to spare.

How, then, would this end? She was sure striking back would break their attack. But if they could not defend themselves she might be the one facing the Higher Magicians and exile.

And if they did manage to shield, they would still continue to hound her all of the way back to the Novices’ Quarters. How could she get away from them? She glanced up at the globe light. If she extinguished it, it would take a few minutes for their eyes to grow used to the dark. She could slip away. Unfortunately, she would suffer the same night-blindness...

Blindness...?

She smiled. Closing her eyes tightly, she exerted her will. Light flashed brightly behind her eyelids, and she felt the attack falter. When she opened her eyes again the novices were blinking or rubbing their faces.

“I can’t see!” Kano exclaimed.

It worked! She grinned as Alend swore vehemently and spread his arms out, having nearly lost his balance on the uneven ground. Issle groped about until she found a tree, then grasped it as if she was afraid it would run away.

Sonea took a step backward. Hearing the crunch of snow, Regin reached out and took a step toward her. His boot landed in the mud created by the melted snow, then slipped sideways. He landed face first in the mire. An exclamation of disgust and frustration burst from him as he struggled to his feet.

Sonea choked back laughter. A murderous look crossed Regin’s face and he leapt up from the ground. Evading his groping hands, Sonea backed away from the novices.

“Thanks for the lesson, Regin. I never knew you were a man of such vision.”

Chuckling, she turned away and started toward the lights of the University.

16 The Rule About Accusations

Rothen was dismantling a delicate construction of tubes, valves, and glass baubles when a voice spoke his name. He looked up to find a young man in servant’s clothes, wearing the green sash that marked him as a Healer’s messenger, standing in the doorway of the classroom.

“Yes?” Rothen said.

“Lady Vinara requests your presence in the Healers’ Quarters.”

Rothen’s heart skipped. What could Vinara want? Had something happened to Sonea? Had one of Regin’s pranks gone too far? Or was it someone else? His old friend, Yaldin? Or Ezrille, his wife?

“I will be there shortly,” he replied.

The messenger bowed and hurried away. Rothen looked at the novice who had stayed back to assist him. Farind smiled.

“I’ll finish if you want, my lord.”

Rothen nodded. “Very well. Just make sure you dispose of the acid carefully.”

“Of course.”

Hurrying down the corridor, Rothen tried to stop himself from guessing the reason for Vinara’s summons. He would know soon enough. The night air was icy cold outside the University, so he surrounded himself with a shield and warmed the air within. Reaching the Healers’ Quarters he found Lady Vinara waiting for him in the entrance.

“You sent for me?” Rothen asked breathlessly.

Her lips twitched into a faint smile. “There was no need to hurry, Lord Rothen,” Vinara told him. “The novices here who claim to be victims of your favorite are not about to expire. Do you know where Sonea is?”

Victims? What had she done? “Studying in her room, most likely.”

“You haven’t seen her this evening?”

“No.” Rothen frowned. “What is this about?”

“Six novices found their way here an hour ago. They claim that Sonea ambushed them in the forest and blinded them.”

“Blinded them? How?”

“With a bright light.”

“Oh.” Rothen relaxed, but seeing the Healer’s grim expression, he grew worried again. “Not permanently?”

She shook her head. “No. None of their injuries are serious—certainly not bad enough to waste Healers’ time on. They will recover.”

“Any injuries other than blindness?”

“Cuts and bruises from finding their way out of the forest.”

“I see.” Rothen nodded slowly. “Would one of these novices be Garrel’s favorite, Regin?”

“Yes.” Her lips thinned. “I have heard Sonea has a particular dislike for this boy.”

Rothen gave a short, bitter laugh. “The feeling is mutual, I assure you. May I speak to Regin?”

“Of course. I will take you to him.” Vinara turned and began to walk along the main corridor of the building.

As Rothen followed, he considered all that Vinara had told him. He didn’t believe for a minute that Sonea had ambushed Regin and his friends. More likely they had ambushed her. Something had gone wrong, however.

They might have blinded themselves so they could blame her for it, but he doubted that had been the case. If they had intended to do so, they would have arranged for others to find and guide them back to the Healers’ Quarters. That they hadn’t even called for assistance mentally suggested they had hesitated to call attention to their situation.

Vinara stopped by a door and gestured inside. Looking into the room, Rothen saw a familiar young man in mudstained robes sitting on the edge of a bed. Regin’s face was flushed. His fists clenched and unclenched and his eyes burned fiercely at a point far beyond the shoulder of his guardian, Lord Garrel.

The magician turned to regard Rothen and his expression darkened. Ignoring him, Rothen listened instead to Regin, who was just at the end of a long, angry whine.

“I swear, she was trying to kill us! I know the Guild law. She should be expelled!”

Rothen glanced at Vinara, then back at the boy, and felt a smile pulling at his lips. If Regin wanted to raise Guild law, then so be it.

“That’s a very serious accusation, Regin,” he said quietly. “And it would be most inappropriate for your guardian to confirm the truth of it.” He turned to look at the woman beside him. “Perhaps Lady Vinara would suggest someone.”

Vinara blinked, then her eyes twinkled as she realized what Rothen meant.

“I will perform the truth-read,” she said.

Regin drew in a sharp breath. Looking back to the novice, Rothen was gratified to see the boy had turned white. “No, I didn’t mean...” he spluttered. “I’m not—”

“Are you withdrawing your accusation, then?” Rothen said.

“Yes,” Regin gasped. “I withdraw my accusation.”

“So what did happen tonight?”

“Yes,” Vinara said, her voice darkening. “Why did Sonea attack you, as you claim?”

“Clearly she intended to ensure they could not attend classes for a few days,” Garrel replied.

“I see,” Rothen said. “What is going to occur in the next few days that she might want you to be absent from?”

“I don’t know... I guess she just wanted to hurt us.”

“And so she followed six novices into the forest,” Rothen gave Vinara a meaningful look, “certain that she would be able to overcome your combined strength? She must be better at Warrior Skills than her marks indicate.”

Regin’s sightless eyes sought his guardian.

“What were the six of you doing in the forest in the first place?” Vinara asked.

“We were just... exploring. For fun.”

“Hmmm,” she said. “That’s not what your friends say.”

Regin opened his mouth, then closed it again. Garrel rose. “My novice has suffered an injury and needs rest. Surely this questioning can wait until he is recovered.”

Rothen hesitated, then decided it was worth the risk. He turned to Vinara. “He’s right. We don’t need to hear Regin’s answers. I’m sure Sonea will submit to a truth-read to prove her innocence.”

“No!” Regin exclaimed.

Vinara’s eyes narrowed. “If she is willing, you cannot prevent it, Regin.”

The novice grimaced, as if tasting something bad. “All right. I’ll tell you. We followed her into the forest and played a trick on her. It was nothing dangerous. We were just... practicing what we’d learned in class.”

“I see.” Vinara’s voice was chilly. “Then you had better tell us what this trick was—and bear in mind that Sonea’s memory will confirm or deny everything you say.”


Sighing, Sonea marked the page of the book with a slip of paper, then rose to answer the door. She opened it carefully, bracing it with magic in case Regin tried to force his way in. To her surprise, Lord Osen stood in the corridor outside.

“Forgive the intrusion,” Lord Osen said. “Administrator Lorlen wishes you to meet him in his office.”

Sonea stared at him, the warmth draining from her face. A cold dread entered her stomach. The Administrator... she hadn’t spoken to him in months. What did he want? Was it anything to do with the High Lord? Had Akkarin discovered that she knew his secret?

“Don’t be concerned,” Osen told her, smiling. “He just wants to ask a few questions.”

Stepping out of her room, she followed him out of the Novices’ Quarters, across the courtyard, and through the back entrance of the University. Their footsteps echoed in the empty corridor. As he opened the door to the Administrator’s office, Sonea drew in a breath. The room was filled with magicians. Some sat in chairs, others were standing. As she stepped inside she realized that most of the Higher Magicans were present.

Seeing Rothen, she let her breath out in relief. Then she saw Lord Garrel and her heart sank. So this was about her encounter with Regin, then. He must have told a fine tale to stir up the Higher Magicians.

Rothen smiled and beckoned to her. Feeling ill, she moved to his side.

“Sonea.”

She turned to face Lorlen, who was sitting behind a large desk. The blue-robed magician’s expression was sober.

“An incident that happened between you and six novices earlier this evening has been brought to our attention. We want you to tell us what happened.”

She looked around the room, then swallowed hard.

“Lord Kiano took me to the fields for a test. I came back the long way, around the Healers’ Quarters. Regin and his friends stopped me in the forest.” She hesitated, wondering how she was to avoid saying anything that could be taken as an accusation.

“Go on,” Lorlen said. “Tell us what happened.”

Taking a deep breath, Sonea continued. “Regin said he wanted to show me something he’d learned from Lord Balkan,” she glanced toward the red-robed magician, “and then the others put their hands on his shoulders. His strike was stronger than usual and I realized the others were giving him extra power somehow.”

“What did you do?”

“Shielded.”

“That’s all?”

“I didn’t want to strike back. They might not protect themselves well enough.”

“Wise. What happened then?”

“I still had my globe light so I knew I had power left.”

A sharp intake of breath to her left made her jump. She turned to see Lady Vinara looking at her appraisingly.

“Go on,” Lorlen said.

“I knew that they wouldn’t give up, and I had to get away before they decided to do something else. So to stop them following me I dazzled them with light.”

She could hear many low voices murmuring behind her. Lorlen made a small gesture and they fell silent.

“A few questions come to mind,” he said. “Why did you take the long way back from the fields?”

“I knew they would be waiting for me,” Sonea replied.

“Who?”

“Regin and the others.”

“Why would they do that?”

“They always...” She shook her head. “I wish I knew, Administrator.”

Lorlen nodded. He looked to Vinara.

“Her story matches Regin’s.”

Sonea stared at the Healer. “Regin told you that?”

“Regin accused you of trying to kill them,” Rothen explained quietly. “When he realized this meant he must submit to a truth-read, he withdrew his accusation. So I said you would submit to one to prove your innocence. After that, the truth came out.”

She looked at him in surprise. He had suggested someone truth-read her? What if Regin hadn’t confessed? Rothen must have been sure Regin would tell the truth once he knew it would be revealed anyway. “So what’s this meeting about, then? Why are all the Higher Magicians here?”

Rothen did not have a chance to reply.

“Does anybody have questions for Sonea?” Lorlen asked.

“Yes.”

Lord Sarrin straightened and stepped forward.

“After this confrontation did you feel tired? Exhausted?”

Sonea shook her head. “No, my lord.”

“Did you perform any other magic tonight?”

“No—actually, yes. I put a binding on my door.”

Lord Sarrin pursed his lips and looked at Lord Balkan. The Warrior regarded her speculatively.

“Have you been practicing Warrior Skills on your own time?” he asked.

“No, my lord.”

“Have you had any other encounters with novices using this method of combining power before?”

“No, I’d never heard of it.”

Lord Balkan leaned back into his chair and nodded to the Administrator. Lorlen looked around the room.

“Any more questions?”

The magicians looked at each other, then shook their heads.

“Then you may go, Sonea.”

She rose and bowed to the magicians. They watched silently as she passed. Only after the door had swung closed did she hear voices in the room, too muffled to be understood.

She stared at the door, then slowly began to smile. In trying to cause her trouble, Regin had brought worse on himself. Turning, she made her way back to the Novices’ Quarters sure that, for once, no one would bother her on the way.


“So much power in one so young.” Lord Sarrin shook his head. “Only a few have progressed so quickly.”

Lorlen nodded. His own powers had developed rapidly. As had Akkarin’s. And they had both been elected to two of the highest positions in the Guild. He could see the dismay in the Higher Magicians’ faces as this occurred to them.

Normally they would be pleased to find such promise in a novice. But Sonea was the slum girl, and she had recently demonstrated her questionable character by stealing a pen. Though Lorlen was prepared to believe this was an isolated incident, perhaps in reaction to the other novices’ harassment, other magicians had not been so forgiving.

“We should not foster any high expectations yet,” he said, to reassure them. “She might simply be an early developer, and this is as strong as she will get.”

“She is already stronger than most of her teachers and,” Sarrin gestured toward Rothen, “perhaps her own guardian.”

“Is that a problem?” Rothen asked coolly.

“No.” Lorlen smiled. “It has never been in the past. You just need to be cautious.”

“Do we need to raise her a class again?” Jerrik crossed his arms and frowned.

“It is only her strength that is advanced,” Vinara replied. “Not her skills. She still has a great deal to learn.”

“All we need do is warn her teachers,” Lorlen said. “They should not test her strength without taking the usual precautions.”

To Lorlen’s satisfaction, all the magicians nodded. Regin’s actions had revealed more than his own cruel nature. He had shown everyone just what Sonea was capable of. Lorlen suspected that Rothen, too, was surprised by just how strong she had proven to be.

Rothen’s attention was on Lord Garrel, however. Regin’s guardian had been silent for most of the discussion. Lorlen frowned. They must not forget the seriousness of the incident that had brought them together.

“What is to be done about Regin?” he asked in a tone that cut through the murmuring.

Balkan smiled. “I think the young man has learned his lesson. He’d be a fool to provoke her now.”

The other magicians nodded and voiced their agreement.

“Some discipline is needed,” Lorlen insisted.

“He broke no rule,” Garrel protested. “Balkan gave him permission to practice this strategy with his classmates.”

“Waylaying another novice is not what we call ‘practicing,’ ” Lorlen replied. “It is dangerous and irresponsible.”

“I agree,” Vinara said firmly. “And his punishment should reflect this.”

The magicians exchanged glances.

“Regin has been taking extra lessons in Warrior Skills,” Balkan said. “Since they were the source of the trouble, I will stop them for a term of... three months.”

Lorlen pursed his lips. “Extend that until the middle of the Second Year. I believe his class will have covered all the lessons on honor and fairness by then.”

Watching Rothen, Lorlen saw the magician raise a hand to scratch his nose and cover a smile. Garrel’s expression darkened, but he remained silent. The corner of Balkan’s mouth curled upward.

“Very well,” the Warrior agreed. “Until the half-year tests of the Second Year have passed, then.”

Lorlen looked up at the other magicians. They nodded their approval.

“That’s settled, then.”

Jerrik sighed, looked around at the others and stepped forward. “If that is all, I will return to my work.”

Lorlen watched as Lord Sarrin and Lady Vinara also rose and followed the University Director out of the room. Lord Garrel followed. Balkan was regarding Rothen closely.

“It’s a pity Sonea has no enthusiasm for the Warrior Skills discipline. We rarely find women warriors of her strength... or resourcefulness.”

Rothen turned to regard the Warrior. “I can’t pretend to be disappointed at her lack of enthusiasm,” he replied.

“Have you been discouraging her?” There was a note of warning in Balkan’s voice.

“Not at all,” Rothen replied smoothly. “It was a certain incident in the North Square that discouraged her, and I doubt I could rectify that if I tried. It took me long enough to persuade her that we weren’t all battle-crazed villains.”

Balkan smiled crookedly. “You have satisfied her that we are not, I hope.”

Rothen sighed and looked away. “Sometimes, I think I’m the only one who is trying.”

“The enmity from other novices was inevitable and it will not stop after graduation. She must learn to deal with it. At least, this time, she used magic rather than less honorable skills.”

Rothen narrowed his eyes at the other magician. Balkan returned his stare levelly. Sensing the tension rising between the two magicians, Lorlen slapped the top of his desk lightly.

“Just make sure they keep their battles to the Arena,” he said. “Had it been summer they might have set the entire forest alight. I have enough to do without such disasters adding to my work. Now, if you please...” he waved to the door with both hands. “I want my office back!”

The two magicians bowed their heads. Apologizing, they walked to the door and stepped outside. As the door closed Lorlen breathed a sigh of relief and exasperation.

Magicians!

17 A Capable Companion

The paths through the gardens had been cleared of snow, but the trees still carried a coating of white along their bare branches. Rothen looked up at the University. Icicles hung from the windows, adding more decoration to the stone frames. As they reached the front of the building snow began to fall, so Rothen led Sonea up the stairs to the shelter of the Entrance Hall.

—Rothen?

—Dorrien.

—I hope you have a dozen heat globes set in your room. I can’t believe this cold snap. It’s worse than any I remember. I’m just coming in sight of the gates now.

Rothen glanced down at Sonea. Her eyes were narrowed at the street beyond the gates.

“Here he comes,” she murmured.

Looking up, Rothen saw a lone rider approaching. The rider waved a hand and one of the gates began to swing inward. Before it had fully opened, he urged his horse through and into a gallop.

The horse pounded around the circular road, its rider’s green robes snapping in the wind. Dorrien was grinning, his face flushed.

“Father!” As the horse slid to a stop, Dorrien threw his leg over the saddle and leapt lightly to the ground.

“Very showy, Dorrien,” Rothen said dryly, starting back down the University stairs. “One day you’re going to fall flat on your face.”

“No doubt right in front of you,” Dorrien replied, drowning Rothen in green cloth as he embraced him, “so you can say ‘I told you so.’ ”

“Would I say that?” Rothen asked innocently.

“Yes, you would...” Dorrien’s blue eyes flicked over Rothen’s shoulder.

“So this is your new novice.”

“Sonea.” As Rothen beckoned, Sonea started down the stairs.

Dorrien pressed the horse’s reins into Rothen’s hand and stepped forward. As always, seeing his son’s smile after a long absence brought an ache of sadness. It was when Dorrien was at his most charming that he reminded Rothen of his deceased wife. The boy had also inherited Yilara’s almost obsessive dedication to Healing.

He’s not a boy any longer, Rothen reminded himself. Dorrien had turned twenty-four a few months past. He was a grown man. At that age, Rothen mused, I had a wife and son.

“Greetings, Lady Sonea.”

“Greetings, Lord Dorrien,” Sonea replied, bowing gracefully.

A servant from the stables appeared while they were talking, and Rothen passed the horse’s reins to the man.

“Where shall I take the bags, my lord?” the servant asked.

“My rooms,” Rothen told him. The man nodded and led the horse away.

“Let’s get out of the cold,” Dorrien suggested.

Nodding, Rothen started up the University stairs. As they entered the warmth of the interior, Dorrien sighed.

“It is good to be back,” he said. “How are things here, Father?”

Rothen shrugged. “As quiet as usual—at least, the only dramas in the last year seemed to have involved us.” He smiled at Sonea. “And you know all about them.”

Dorrien chuckled. “Yes. And how is Ambassador Dannyl?”

“He hasn’t communicated with me directly for some months, but I have received a few letters, and a box of Elyne wine.”

“Any left?”

“Yes.”

“Now that’s good news.” Dorrien rubbed his hands together.

“How are matters in the northeast?”

Dorrien shrugged. “Nothing unusual. A bout of winter-fever was the most exciting event of the last year. As usual, a few of the farmers tried to continue with their work and got themselves a case of lungrot on top. A few accidents to deal with, a few old ones passing on, a few new babes taking their place. Oh, and one of the reber-herder boys came to me with burns. He claimed he was attacked by what the locals call the Sakan King.”

Rothen frowned. “The Sakan King? Isn’t that an old superstition about a ghost that lives on Mount Kanlor?”

“Yes, but I’d say from the injury that the boy had dropped some burning wood on himself.”

Rothen chuckled. “Young boys can be amazingly creative when they don’t want to admit they’ve done something wrong, or foolish.”

“This was a rather entertaining story,” Dorrien agreed. “The boy invented quite a vivid picture of this Sakan King.”

Rothen smiled. Mind communication was too direct for this kind of chatter. It was so much better to be talking face to face. In the corner of his eye he could see Sonea watching Dorrien. As his son turned away to peer into the Foodhall she gave him a more appraising look.

Dorrien noted the direction of Rothen’s gaze and glanced back at her. She took this as an invitation to join the conversation.

“Did you have a difficult journey?”

Dorrien groaned. “Awful. Blizzards in the mountains and endless snow for the rest. But when the Guild calls, one must come, even if it means spending every shred of your power carving a path through the snow and keeping yourself and your horse from freezing.”

“Could you have waited until spring?”

“Spring is the busiest time for the reber-herders. The reber start to drop their young, the farmers work too hard, have accidents.” He shook his head. “Not a good time.”

“Summer, then?”

Dorrien shook his head again. “Someone always comes down with heat exhaustion or sunburn. And summer-cough.”

“Autumn?”

“Harvest time.”

“So winter is the best time.”

“There’s always someone who comes to me with frostrot, and living indoors for months can be a health problem, and—”

“There’s no good time, is there?”

He grinned. “No.”

Emerging from the back entrance of the University, they walked through falling snow to the Magicians’ Quarters. Rothen saw Sonea’s eyebrows rise as Dorrien stepped onto the tiled area in the stairwell and began to float upward.

“Are you still using the stairs, Father?” Dorrien crossed his arms and shook his head. “I suppose you’re still preaching about exercise and laziness. What about keeping your skills in shape as well as your body?”

“I’m surprised you have any energy left to levitate after all the trials you went through on the way here,” Rothen replied.

Dorrien shrugged. Looking closely, Rothen noted signs of strain in the young man’s expression. So he’s showing off, Rothen mused. Yaldin had once commented that Dorrien could charm the wool off a reber if he set his mind to it. Rothen looked at Sonea. She was staring at Dorrien’s feet, probably sensing the disc of energy beneath them.

They reached the top of the stairs, Dorrien stepping onto the landing with a quiet sigh of relief. He gave Sonea an appraising look.

“Has my father shown you how to levitate yet?”

She shook her head.

“Well, we’ll have to do something about that.” Dorrien sent Rothen a reproachful look. “It’s a skill that can come in very handy at times.”

—For impressing young ladies?

Dorrien ignored that. Rothen smiled and led them to his door. They entered the warmth of the guestroom and were greeted by Tania.

“Warmed wine, my lords?”

“Please!” Dorrien exclaimed.

“None for me,” Sonea said, remaining in the doorway. “I still have three chapters of medicine to study.”

Dorrien looked as if he might protest, then changed his mind. “It’s close to the end of First Year for you, isn’t it, Sonea?”

“Yes, two weeks until the First Year tests.”

“A lot of studying.”

Sonea nodded. “Yes, so I must leave you two to catch up. I am honored to meet you, Lord Dorrien.”

“Nice to meet you, too, Sonea.” Dorrien lifted his glass. “I’ll see you later, or at dinner.”

The door closed quietly behind her. Dorrien’s eyes lingered.

“You didn’t tell me she had short hair.”

“It was much shorter a year ago.”

“She’s so fragile-looking.” Dorrien frowned. “I expected something... rougher, I suppose.”

“You should have seen how thin she was when she first came here.”

“Ah,” Dorrien sobered. “Raised in the slums. No wonder she’s so small.”

“Small, perhaps,” Rothen agreed, “but not weak. Not in the magical sense, anyway.” Rothen considered his son. “I was hoping you might distract her a little. All she’s thought about since summer is study and her problems with the other novices.”

The glint of humor flared into life again in Dorrien’s eyes. “Distract her? I think I can do that—if you think she won’t find a country Healer horribly boring.”


The main street of Kiko Town wound around the island in an unbroken spiral, ending at the Vindo Emperor’s home at the peak. The city had been built that way, according to Dannyl’s guide, to confound and slow invaders. The road was also used as a route for parades during festivals, ensuring that all city dwellers had a view of the procession.

The harvest festival had been in full swing when Dannyl and Tayend arrived, and was still going three days later. The tasks Lorlen had asked Errend to take care of were minor, but numerous. Dannyl could not start to work on them until the festival was over, so he and Tayend had been relaxing in the Guild House since they had arrived, only slipping out to watch the street performances or buy wine and local delicacies.

Celebrants, singers, dancers and musicians filled the main road for most of each day, making it difficult to get anywhere quickly. The procession could be avoided, however, by using the steep stairways bridging each loop of the spiraling main road. It was not an easy journey when travelling upward, and Tayend was breathing hard when they finally reached their destination, a wine merchant’s shop on the main road, several staircases uphill from the Guild House.

Stopping to lean against a building, Tayend waved Dannyl toward the shop. “I’ll rest,” he gasped. “You go.”

At once a girl carrying bracelets of flowers stepped out of the procession, approached the scholar and tried to persuade him to buy some. Tayend had been more than a little overwhelmed by the boldness of Vindo women, but they had been told by their guide that the Vindo friendliness was simply local good manners.

Leaving Tayend occupied, Dannyl entered the shop and began selecting wine. Knowing that Tayend would appreciate something familiar, he chose several bottles of Elyne wine. Like most Vindo, the merchant spoke Dannyl’s language well enough to make his price known, but not well enough to barter.

As the man began to pack the bottles into a box, Dannyl moved to the shop’s bay window. The flower girl had moved on. Tayend leaned against the corner of the building, his arms crossed and his attention taken by a group of male acrobats.

Then a hand shot out, grasped Tayend’s arm, and pulled the scholar into the shadows.

Dannyl stepped closer to the bay window, then froze. He could see Tayend now, pressed up against the wall of an alley beside the shop. A dirty-looking Vindo with straggly hair had one hand around the scholar’s neck. The other held a blade to Tayend’s side.

White with terror, Tayend stared at the mugger. The man’s lips moved. A demand for money, Dannyl guessed. He took a step toward the door, then forced himself to stop. What would happen if the mugger was confronted by a magician?

Dannyl’s imagination raced forward. He saw the mugger using Tayend as a hostage... taking the scholar with him as he escaped... stabbing Tayend when Dannyl was out of sight.

Whereas if Tayend gave up his money, the man would simply take it and go.

Tayend’s eyes moved to the window and locked with Dannyl’s. Nodding toward the mugger, Dannyl mouthed the words: “Give it to him.” Tayend frowned.

Seeing the change in the scholar’s expression, the mugger glanced toward the window. Ducking out of view, Dannyl cursed. Had the man seen him? He peered around the edge of the window.

Tayend was pulling his bag of coins out of his coat. The mugger grabbed it, then tested its weight. With a grin of triumph, he stowed it in his pocket.

Then, with a swift jab, he sank the knife into Tayend’s side.

Horrified, Dannyl leapt out of the shop. Tayend was doubled over, blood gushing from the wound. Seeing that the mugger was bracing himself to stab again, Dannyl reached out with magic. The mugger’s expression changed to surprise and horror as he saw Dannyl. Then he was flying through the air. Thrown over the road, he slammed into the opposite building with a sickening crack and fell to the ground, the celebrants scattering as he landed among them.

For a moment Dannyl stared at the man in surprise and horror. He hadn’t meant to react so strongly. Then Tayend gave a low moan and he put the mugger out of his mind. Dashing forward, he caught Tayend as the scholar crumpled, and lowered him to the ground. Tearing away the bloodied shirt, Dannyl pressed his hand to the wound.

Closing his eyes, he sent his mind inward. The knife had cut deep, severing veins, arteries and organs. Dannyl called on Healing power and focused it on the damaged area. He diverted blood, persuaded tissue to knit together, and encouraged Tayend’s body to draw away grime from the dirty knife. Healers usually worked only until a wound was sealed and safe, saving their power for other patients, but Dannyl poured his energy forth until only scar tissue remained. Then he listened to the body under his hand as he had been taught, checking that everything was working properly.

Other messages reached him. Tayend’s heart raced. His muscles were stiff with tension. A feeling of relief and dread touched Dannyl’s mind. He frowned. A lingering fear was to be expected, but there was something different about this feeling of dread. His senses shifted to the mental level and suddenly Tayend’s thoughts spilled into his mind.

Perhaps he won’t see... No, it’s too late! He’s probably seen already. Now he’ll reject me. Kyralian magicians are like that. They think we’re perverted. Unnatural. But no! He’ll understand. He says he knows what it’s like. But he’s not a lad himself... or is he? He could be hiding it. No, he couldn’t be. He’s a Kyralian magician. Their Healers would have detected it, and thrown him out...

Surprised, Dannyl drew away from Tayend’s mind, but kept his eyes closed and his hand on the scholar’s side. So this was why Tayend refused Healing. He was afraid that Dannyl would sense that... that he was like Dem Agerralin. Tayend desired men.

Memories of the last few months flashed through Dannyl’s mind. He recalled the day after the sea leech attack. Tayend had found a pair of leeches entwined around each other and a rope. A sailor had noticed Tayend’s interest.

“They breed,” the man said.

“Which is the boy, and which is the girl?” Tayend asked.

“Not boy or girl. Same.”

Tayend’s brows rose and he glanced at the sailor. “Really?”

The man moved away to collect a pan of siyo. Tayend looked up at the leeches.

“Good for you,” he’d said.

Remembering his time in Elyne, Dannyl recalled his conversation with Errend. “He’s the youngest son of Tremmelin... scholar, I believe... Don’t see him in court much—though I have seen him with Dem Agerralin... a man of dubious associations.”

Then the Dem Agerralin: “We are all very curious about you...”

We?

Tayend himself, in the Palace: “The Elyne court is both awful in its decadence, and wonderful for its freedom. We expect everyone to have a few interesting or eccentric habits.”

Tayend had been uneasy for their whole stay in Lonmar. Dannyl knew what they had witnessed in Judgment Square had shocked Tayend, but he had expected the scholar would eventually forget the incident and enjoy the rest of the “adventure.” But Tayend had remained fearful and quiet.

And now, of course, he’s worried how I will react. We Kyralians aren’t exactly known for our tolerance of men like Tayend. I know that only too well. No wonder he was afraid of being Healed. He believes that Healers can sense if a man desires other men, as if it’s an illness.

Dannyl frowned. So what should he do now? Should he let Tayend know that he had discovered his secret, or would it be better to pretend that he hadn’t noticed anything?

I don’t know. I need more time to consider. For now... yes, I will pretend I don’t know.

Opening his eyes, he found Tayend staring at him. Smiling, Dannyl drew away his hand. “Are you—?”

“My lord?”

Looking up, Dannyl saw that a crowd had gathered around him. The man who had addressed him was a Vindo guard. Other guards were questioning people. One inspected the prone mugger, then extracted Tayend’s money bag from the man’s hand.

The guard standing over Dannyl nudged a bloodied knife on the ground by Tayend’s foot with the toe of his sandal. “No trial,” he said, meeting Dannyl’s eyes nervously. “People say you kill bad man. You in right.”

Looking through the crowd, Dannyl saw the staring eyes of the mugger. Dead. A shiver ran down his spine. He had never killed before. That was something else he would have to think about later. As the guard moved away, Dannyl turned to Tayend and gave the scholar a questioning look.

“Are you recovered?”

Tayend nodded quickly. “If you don’t count the fact that I’m still shaking.”

The wine merchant stood in the doorway of his shop, looking uncertain and frightened. A younger man stood beside him with the box of wine in his arms. “Come on, then. Let’s get our wine. I don’t know about you, but I just got a lot thirstier.”

Tayend took a few unsteady steps, then seemed to regain his confidence. A guard pressed the money bag into his hands. Dannyl smiled at the scholar’s expression, then, indicating that the merchant’s companion should follow, started toward the Guild House.


The words on the page before Sonea suddenly disappeared under fat black droplets. She looked over her shoulder, but no one stood nearby. Hearing more drops hit the page, she looked up and saw an ornate ink bottle hovering high above her.

From behind the shelves of books to her left she heard giggles. The bottle moved, threatening to splash ink on Sonea’s robes. Narrowing her eyes at it, she sent out a flash of power. At once the ink sizzled and dried, and the ink bottle began to glow red. It shot away toward the shelves, and she heard a yelp.

Smiling grimly, she looked down again, but her smile vanished as she saw the ink drying on the page. She drew out a nosecloth and dabbed at the spots. Then she muttered a curse as the ink spread.

“Bad idea. You’re only making it worse,” said a voice at her shoulder.

She jumped and turned to find Dorrien standing behind her. Before she could stop herself, she snapped the book shut.

He shook his head. “That certainly won’t help.”

Sonea frowned with annoyance and searched for a retort, but he reached out to take the book from her.

“Here, let me have a look.” He laughed. “First Year Alchemy. This isn’t even worth saving!”

“But it’s from the library.”

Dorrien leafed through to the stained pages and grimaced. “There’s nothing you can do to fix this,” he said, shaking his head. “But don’t worry. Rothen can have another copy made.”

“But...”

Dorrien’s brows rose. “But?”

“It will cost—”

“Money?” Dorrien finished. “That’s hardly a problem, Sonea.”

Sonea opened her mouth to protest, but closed it again.

“You don’t think it’s fair for him to pay for it, do you?” Dorrien dropped into one of the chairs beside her. “After all, you didn’t damage the book.”

Sonea chewed on her lip. “You saw them?”

“I passed a novice nursing burned fingertips and another holding what looked like a melted ink bottle. When I saw you trying to rescue this book, I guessed the rest.” His lips twitched. “Rothen has told me of your admirers.”

She regarded him silently. He laughed at her expression, but it was a laugh edged with bitterness.

“I wasn’t very popular in my First Year of University, either. I understand a little of what you’re going through. It’s torture, but you can get yourself out of it.”

“How?”

He put the book down on the table and leaned back in the chair. “Before I say anything, you had better tell me what they’ve done to you so far. I need to get an idea what these novices are like, particularly Regin, before I can help you.”

“Help me?” She regarded him dubiously. “What can you do that Rothen can’t?”

He smiled. “Maybe nothing, but we won’t know that if we don’t try.”

Somewhat reluctantly, she told him about the first day, about Issle and how all the class turned from her. She related how she had worked until she could join the next class only to have Regin follow her, and how soon after he had put Narron’s pen in her box so that everyone would think she was a thief. And then she described the ambush in the forest.

“I don’t know why, but I left that meeting with the Higher Magicians with a feeling that something else was going on that I didn’t know about,” she finished. “They didn’t ask the sort of questions I expected.”

“What were you expecting?”

Sonea shrugged. “Questions about who started the whole thing. They only asked if I was tired.”

“You had just demonstrated how strong you were, Sonea,” Dorrien pointed out. “They would have been more interested in that than some squabble between you and the novices.”

“But they banned Regin from Balkan’s class until the middle of next year.”

“Oh, they had to punish him,” Dorrien waved a hand dismissively, “but that’s not why they questioned you. They wanted you to confirm his story, but mostly they wanted to gauge your limits.”

Sonea thought back to that interview and nodded slowly.

“From what I’ve heard, you’re stronger than many of the lower-level teachers now,” he continued. “Some believe your powers have developed young and won’t grow much further, others think you’ll continue at this rate and become as powerful as Lorlen. Who knows? It doesn’t mean anything until you know how to use that power.”

Dorrien leaned forward and rubbed his palms together. “But the magicians have to acknowledge that Regin and his friends are ganging up on you now. Unfortunately, they can only do something about it when there’s proof. We have to give them that proof. I think we should convince them that he was the one who planted Narron’s pen in your box.”

“How?”

“Hmmm.” Dorrien leaned back in his chair and drummed his fingers on the cover of the book. “Ideally, it should involve him trying to set you up as a thief again. Then when he’s caught, everyone will have to consider that you were set up before. Yet we’ll have to make sure there’s no possibility that they’ll think we set him up...”

As they tossed ideas back and forth, Sonea felt her spirits lighten. Perhaps Dorrien could help her. He was certainly nothing like she had expected him to be. In fact, she decided, he was nothing like any magician she had met before.

I think I actually like him, she mused.

18 Friendship

Opening the door to her room, Sonea blinked in surprise.

“Enough studying,” Dorrien announced. “You’ve been stuck in there every night this week. It’s Freeday, and we’re going out.”

“Out?” Sonea repeated.

“Out,” he affirmed.

“Where to?”

“That,” Dorrien’s eyes twinkled, “is a secret.”

Sonea opened her mouth to protest, but he put a finger to her lips. “Shh,” he said. “No more questions.”

Curious despite her annoyance, she pulled the door closed and followed him down the corridor of the Novices’ Quarters. She caught a soft sound behind her and looked back over her shoulder. Regin was peering out from the open doorway of a room, his lips curled into a sly smile.

Turning away, she followed Dorrien outside. The sun was shining, though the grounds were still buried deep under snow. Dorrien walked fast, and she had to hurry to keep up with him.

“How far away is this secret place?”

“Not far.” Dorrien smiled.

Not far. Like most of Dorrien’s answers, it told her nothing. She pressed her lips together, determined to ask no more questions.

“Have you been out of the grounds many times since you came here?” he asked, slowing his stride as they entered the University.

“A few times. Not since I started at the University, though.”

“But that’s nearly six months ago.” Dorrien shook his head. “Rothen really should take you out more. It’s not healthy spending all your time indoors.”

Amused by his disapproval, she smiled. She couldn’t imagine him being comfortable indoors for long periods of time. A light tan colored his face and hands, hinting at long hours spent under the sun. His strides were long and easy, and she had to walk fast to keep up.

She had expected a younger Rothen. While Dorrien’s eyes were the same brilliant blue as his father’s, his jaw was narrower and his frame was thinner. However, the main difference was in their personalities. Or was it? While Rothen was dedicated to teaching novices, Dorrien was commited to looking after the villages in his care. They just practiced different disciplines and lived in vastly different surrounds.

“Where did you go?” Dorrien asked.

“I visited my aunt and uncle in the slums a few times,” she told him. “Every time I did, I think a few magicians were worried I might try to run away.”

“Have you ever thought of running away, Sonea?”

Surprised by the question, she looked at him closely. His gaze was level, and his expression serious.

“Sometimes,” she admitted, lifting her chin.

Dorrien smiled. “Don’t think you’re the only novice who ever did,” he said quietly. “Nearly all of us think about it at some time—usually just before testing time.”

“But you did get away in the end, didn’t you?” Sonea pointed out.

He laughed. “You could look at it that way.”

“How long have you been working in the country?”

“Five years.” Reaching the end of the corridor, they stepped into the Entrance Hall, and started up the stairs.

“Do you miss the Guild?”

He pursed his lips. “Sometimes. I miss Father most, but I also miss having access to all the medicines and knowledge here. If I need to find out how to treat an illness I can communicate with Healers here, but it’s a slower process and I often don’t have the medicines in my store that I need.”

“Is there another Healers’ Quarters where you live?”

“Oh, no,” Dorrien smiled. “I live in a little house on a hillside, on my own. People come to me to have their illnesses treated, or I visit them. Sometimes I have to travel for several hours, and I have to take everything I might need with me.”

Sonea absorbed this as she followed him up the second flight of stairs. When they reached the top she noted that, while she was a little out of breath, Dorrien wasn’t at all affected by the exertion.

“This way.” He beckoned and walked down the main corridor. They were on the third floor of the University. Mystified, Sonea wondered what could be so interesting up here.

Dorrien turned into a smaller passage. After taking several turns and passing through a small, unused room, he stopped before a door and waved a hand slowly over a panel set into the wood. Sonea heard a click, then the door swung inward. Gesturing for her to follow, Dorrien moved into an unlit staircase. As the door closed behind them a globe of light sparked into existence above Dorrien’s head.

“Where are we?” Sonea breathed. They had taken so many turns that she was completely disorientated. She was sure they were somewhere near the front of the University. There were no floors above, yet the staircase continued upward.

“We’re inside the University,” Dorrien told her with an innocent smile.

“I know that.”

He chuckled and turned toward the stairs. They climbed up to another door, which responded to Dorrien’s hand as the other had. As it swung open, a blast of icy wind rushed in to chill her skin.

“Now we’re outside the University,” Dorrien said as they stepped through the door.

Finding herself on a wide pathway, Sonea caught her breath in surprise. They were standing on the University’s roof.

It curved slightly to prevent rain and snow from gathering. She could see the large glass ceiling of the Great Hall in the center. A little snow had gathered around the frame of each panel of glass. The ornate edging that topped the two longer sides of the building formed a sturdy railing at waist height.

“I didn’t know it was possible to get onto the roof,” she admitted.

“Only a few magicians are allowed to come here,” Dorrien told her. “The locks respond to their touch. I was given access by Lady Vinara’s predecessor, Lord Garen.” Dorrien’s expression became wistful. “After mother died, he and I became friends of sorts. He was like an additional grandfather, I suppose. One who was always around to talk to me. He taught me when I decided to b—”

A blast of wind whisked his words away and grabbed at their robes. Sonea’s fringe whipped around her face, stinging her eyes. She reached behind her head and grabbed the clip that held her hair back. Turning to face the wind, she gathered the wayward strands together and fastened them tightly.

Then the wind abruptly stopped. Sensing the barrier Dorrien had created to shield them, she looked up to find him watching her, his eyes bright in the sunlight.

“Come down here,” he beckoned.

He strode down to the railing. Sonea followed, noting how the surface of the roof had been carved with grooves to prevent boots slipping when it was wet. Dorrien stopped halfway along the length of the building. Brushing snow off the railing, she leaned over to stare at the ground. It was a dizzyingly long way down.

A group of servants hurried along the path, making their way through the gardens toward the Healers’ Quarters. She could see the roof of the circular building over the treetops. Turning to her right, she saw the Novices’ Quarters, the Dome, the Seven Arches building and the Baths. Behind was Sarika’s Hill, the forest dusted with snow. At the top of the hill the disused, crumbling lookout was just visible, mostly hidden by trees.

Turning around completely, she looked at the city, then beyond. A ribbon of blue, the Tarali River, wound away from Imardin toward the horizon.

“Look,” Dorrien said, pointing. “You can see barges on the river.”

Sonea shaded her eyes and saw a long line of flat craft floating on the river just beyond the city outskirts. On each stood tiny men with poles, with which they constantly prodded the riverbed. She frowned.

“Isn’t the river deep?”

“It is closer to the city,” Dorrien told her, “but up there it’s still shallow enough for the bargemen. When they arrive in the city a boat will come out and guide them into the port. They’re carrying produce from the northwest, most likely,” Dorrien noted. “See the road on the other side of the river?”

Sonea nodded. A narrow brown line ran beside the blue line of the river.

“When they have delivered their load they will tie the barges to gorin, who will pull them back upstream. The gorin will be used to bring other trade downstream—they’re slower and cheaper to hire.

“To get to my home, you follow that road.” Dorrien pointed. “The Steelbelt Ranges appear on the horizon after a few days’ riding.”

Sonea followed the direction of his finger. Dark clumps of trees grew along the distant road, and beyond them she could see fields stretching to the horizon.

She had studied maps of Kyralia, and knew that mountains marked the border between Kyralia and Sachaka, just as, in the northwest, the Grey Mountains formed the border of Elyne. As she stared out into the distance, a strange feeling stole over her. There were places out there she had never seen—never even thought to wonder about—but they were still a part of her country.

And beyond that there were other lands she had only recently begun to learn about.

“Have you ever been outside Kyralia?”

“No,” Dorrien shrugged. “I might travel one day. Never had a good reason to go, and I don’t like being away from my village too long.”

“What about Sachaka? You live right near one of the passes, don’t you? Haven’t you ever slipped through to have a look?”

He shook his head. “A few of the herders have, probably to see if it was worth grazing there. There are no towns on the other side, not for many days’ ride. Just wasteland.”

“The wasteland from the war?”

“Yes.” He nodded. “You’ve been paying attention to your history lessons, I see.”

She shrugged. “It’s the only interesting part. Everything else—the Alliance and formation of the Guild—is mindlessly boring.”

He laughed, then moved away from the railing. They walked slowly back to the door and entered the little room again. Pausing at the top of the stairs, he placed a hand on her arm.

“So, did you like my surprise?”

She nodded. “Yes.”

“Better than studying?”

“Of course.”

He grinned and stepped sideways. Sonea gasped as he dropped down the stairwell. A moment later he rose into sight again, floating on a disc of magic. She pressed a hand to her chest, feeling her heart pounding.

“You nearly stopped my heart, Dorrien!” she scolded.

He laughed. “Want to learn how to levitate?”

She shook her head.

“Of course you do.”

“I have three more chapters to read.”

His eyes twinkled. “You can read them tonight. Do you want to learn this when the other novices are watching? If I teach you now, nobody but me will see the mistakes you make.”

She chewed her lip. He had a point...

“Go on,” he urged. Throwing his arms out, he spun around in a circle. “I won’t let you out the door downstairs if you refuse.”

Sonea rolled her eyes. “Oh, very well!”


The Guild House in Kiko Town was built on a steep slope. Numerous balconies allowed visitors a view of the sea, the beaches, and the long, spiral road—still filled with celebrants. The sound of rhythmic music drifted up to Dannyl’s ears. In one hand he held a glass of Elyne wine, in the other was the bottle. Taking a sip, he moved from the balcony railing to a chair and sat down, setting the bottle beside him. Stretching his legs out, he let his mind wander.

As always, it wandered straight to Tayend.

The scholar had been awkward and nervous around Dannyl since the mugging. Though Dannyl had tried to behave as if he hadn’t noticed anything unusual, it seemed this hadn’t convinced Tayend that his secret had remained undiscovered. The scholar believed that a magician, when Healing, would find some physical sign to betray his inclinations, and the only way Dannyl could reassure him that this wasn’t true was to tell Tayend he was wrong. That, of course, would reveal that Dannyl had learned the secret anyway.

Tayend feared that Dannyl would reject his friendship. It was a reasonable fear. Though Kyralians didn’t execute men for this “unacceptable” behavior as the Lonmar did, it was still considered wrong and unnatural. Men were punished by the removal of titles and by the man’s family being treated as if they were all tainted by association. If a family discovered one of their own had such unnatural tendencies, they sent him away to manage small estates or family interests.

Dannyl had heard of Guild magicians in the past who had been punished in this way. Though they weren’t expelled, they became outcasts in every other way. He had been told, during the troubles he faced as a novice, that if the rumors proved true he might not be allowed to graduate.

In all the years since, he had been careful to avoid drawing suspicion on himself again. In the past few days he had been struggling with the unsettling thought that, if Tayend’s preferences were well known in Elyne, it was inevitable that the court would be speculating about his own. The rumor from his past would only add fire to the gossip, and while such gossip might not be dangerous in Elyne, once it reached the Guild...

Dannyl shook his head. After spending several months travelling with Tayend, any damage to his reputation had already been done. To regain his reputation he ought to disassociate himself from Tayend as soon as they returned to Elyne. He ought to make it clear he had been appalled to discover his assistant was, as the Elyne put it, a “lad.”

Tayend will understand, a voice in the back of his mind said. Or will he? said another. What if he grows angry and tells Akkarin about Lorlen’s research?

No, the first replied. It would ruin his integrity as a scholar. And perhaps you can end this friendship kindly, without hurting his feelings.

Dannyl scowled down at his wineglass. Why did it always come to this? Tayend was a good companion, a man he liked and valued. Thinking of ending their friendship for fear of gossip reaching the Guild made him feel ashamed and angry. Surely he could enjoy the scholar’s company without endangering his reputation.

Let the gossips talk, he thought. I’ll not let them ruin another promising friendship.

But if the Guild heard, and was outraged enough to order him home...

No, they wouldn’t do something that dramatic on the strength of a mere rumor. They know what the Elyne court is like. They won’t act unless they hear something really damning.

And they won’t, Dannyl told himself. It was clear he would never escape this sort of speculation. So he would have to learn to live with it. Manage it. Perhaps even turn it to his advantage...

“You’re not planning to drink that bottle all by yourself, are you?”

Startled, Dannyl looked up to see Tayend standing at the door to the balcony.

“Of course not,” he replied.

“Good,” Tayend said. “Otherwise I’d look a fool carrying this around.” He held up an empty glass.

As Dannyl poured the wine Tayend stared at him, but looked quickly away as Dannyl met his eyes. The scholar moved to the railing and stared out over the sea.

It’s time, Dannyl decided. Time to tell him the truth, and that I’m not going to push him away. He took a deep breath.

“We have to talk,” Tayend said suddenly.

“Yes,” Dannyl agreed. He considered his words carefully. “I think I know why you wouldn’t let me Heal you.”

Tayend winced. “You said to me once that you understood how difficult it was for... for men like me.”

“But you said that men like you are accepted in Elyne.”

“They are, and they aren’t.” Tayend looked down at his glass, then drained it. He turned to face Dannyl. “At least we don’t disown people for it,” he said accusingly.

Dannyl grimaced. “As a nation, Kyralia isn’t known for tolerance. You know I’ve experienced that for myself. We aren’t all prejudiced, however.”

A frown creased Tayend’s brow. “I was going to be a magician, once. A cousin of mine tested me and found potential. They were going to send me to the Guild.” Tayend’s eyes misted over, and Dannyl saw longing in the scholar’s face, but then the scholar shook his head and sighed. “Then I heard about you and I realized that it didn’t matter whether the rumors were true or not. It was clear that I could never be a magician. The Guild would work out what I was and send me straight home.”

Dannyl suddenly felt a strange, dull anger. With his impressive memory and sharp intellect, Tayend would have been a fine magician. “So how did you avoid joining the Guild?”

“I told father I didn’t want to.” Tayend shrugged. “He didn’t suspect then. Later, when I began to associate with certain people, he decided he’d worked out my real reason. He believes I turned down the chance because I wanted to indulge myself in ways the Guild wouldn’t allow. He never understood that I wouldn’t be able to hide what I was.” Tayend looked down at his empty glass, then strode forward and picked up the bottle. Refilling his glass, he downed the wine quickly.

“Well,” he said, looking out over the ocean, “if it’s any consolation, I always knew the rumors about you couldn’t be true.”

Dannyl winced. “Why do you say that?”

“Well, if you were like me, and couldn’t help what you felt, then the Healers would find out, wouldn’t they?”

“Not necessarily.”

The scholar’s eyes widened. “Are you telling me...?”

“They sense the physical. That is all. If there is something in a man’s body that causes him to desire men, the Healers haven’t found it yet.”

“But I was told... I was told Healers can tell if there’s something wrong with someone.”

“They can.”

“So this... isn’t a wrongness or...” Tayend frowned and looked at Dannyl. “So how did you know about me?”

Dannyl smiled. “Your mind was shouting it so loud I could hardly ignore it. People with magical potential who don’t learn to use it often project their thoughts strongly.”

“Oh?” Tayend looked away, his face reddening. “How much did you... read?”

“Not much,” Dannyl assured him. “Mostly your fears. I didn’t continue listening. That’s not good manners.”

Tayend nodded. He thought for a moment, then his eyes widened. “You mean I could have joined the Guild!” He frowned. “But I’m not sure I would have liked it much.” Moving to the chair next to Dannyl’s, Tayend sat down. “Can I ask a personal question?”

“Yes.”

“What really happened between you and that novice?”

Dannyl sighed. “Nothing.” He glanced at Tayend and found the scholar watching him expectantly. “Very well. The whole story, then.

“I wasn’t popular. New novices often seek older ones to help with their studies, but I had trouble finding someone who’d agree to help me. I’d heard tales about one of the older boys, and that other novices avoided him because of these stories, but he was one of the best in his year and I decided to ignore the rumors. When he agreed to help me I was rather pleased with myself.” He shook his head. “But there was a novice in my class who hated me.”

“Lord Fergun?”

“Yes. We’d thrown insults and played tricks on each other since classes first started. He’d heard the tales about my helper, and they were all he needed to start new rumors. The next I knew I was being questioned by the Higher Magicians.”

“What happened?”

“I denied the rumors, of course. They decided the best way to stop the gossip was to keep us apart, so I was ordered to stay away from the boy. Of course, this was all the confirmation the novices needed.”

“What happened to him? Were the rumors about him true?”

“He graduated and returned to his country. That’s all I can tell you.” Seeing Tayend’s gaze sharpen with curiosity, Dannyl added: “No, I’m not going to tell you his name.”

Looking disappointed, Tayend leaned back in his chair. “So what happened then?”

Dannyl shrugged. “I kept studying and made sure I didn’t bring suspicion on myself again. Eventually everyone forgot about it, except Fergun—and the Elyne court, it seems.”

Tayend didn’t smile. A crease appeared between his eyebrows. “And what will you do now?”

Dannyl refilled his glass. “Since the Tombs of White Tears are closed during the festival, there’s not much to do except drink and relax.”

“And then?”

“I guess we visit the Tombs.”

“And then?”

“That depends on what we find. Either way, we’ll return to Elyne.”

“That’s not what I mean.” Tayend held Dannyl’s eyes. “If being seen with a novice who might or might not have been a lad was enough to cause you so much trouble, then associating with a man known to be a lad must be much, much worse. You said you must avoid bringing suspicion on yourself. I can still assist you from the library, but I’ll send what I find to you by messenger.”

Dannyl felt something twist inside. He hadn’t considered that Tayend might suggest this. Remembering his earlier thoughts of ending the friendship he felt a pang of guilt.

“Oh, no,” he replied. “You won’t get rid of me that easily.”

“But what could bring more suspicion upon you than associating with—”

“—a scholar of the Great Library,” Dannyl finished. “A useful and valuable assistant. And a friend. If the gossips are going to talk, they’ll have started already. They’ll have more to talk about if they hear we’re communicating in secret.”

Surprised, Tayend opened his mouth to speak, then shook his head. Looking down at his glass, he lifted it to toast Dannyl.

“Here’s to friendship, then.”

Smiling, Dannyl lifted his glass to meet the scholar’s.


Rothen ran a finger along the spines of the books as he searched. He paused as the door of the Magicians’ Library opened, and looked up to see Dorrien striding into the room followed by Sonea. He frowned. Sonea had asked him to get several books from the library, but here she was with Dorrien.

Lord Jullen scowled and told her to leave her box on the shelves near the door. She pulled a few sheets of paper out and left the box behind. Dorrien nodded politely to the librarian, then led Sonea into the long rows of shelving.

Deciding to find the books before pursuing the pair, Rothen continued his search, eventually finding the first book on his list several shelves from where it should have been. He silently cursed the magician who had misplaced it.

He was only vaguely aware of somebody approaching Lord Jullen and asking for help, but he did notice that Dorrien had begun a friendly conversation with Lord Galin in the next aisle. A loud coughing started behind him, and he glanced behind to see Lord Garrel holding a nosecloth to his mouth. Then an exclamation drew his attention away.

“Regin!” Galin barked, striding out into the aisle. Looking through the shelves, Rothen could see Regin standing next to Jullen’s desk.

“Yes, my lord?” His expression was all innocence and puzzlement.

“What did you just put in this box?”

“What box, my lord?”

Galin’s eyes narrowed.

“What is the problem, Lord Galin?” Lord Garrel strode down the aisle and approached Jullen’s desk.

“I just saw Regin take something from Jullen’s desk and put it in this box.” Galin pulled Sonea’s box off the shelf and placed it on the desk in front of Regin.

Hearing murmuring voices, Rothen looked around to see magicians gathered in twos and threes, watching this drama unfold. Lord Jullen strode out from behind the shelves. He looked from the magicians to the novice and then to the box. “What is going on here? This is Sonea’s box.”

Galin’s brows rose. “Is it? How very interesting.” He repeated what he’d seen. Lord Jullen’s eyebrows dropped into a disapproving frown.

“Shall we see which of your possessions Regin has decided that Sonea would dearly like to own?”

Regin paled. Rothen felt a smile spread over his face. He nearly yelped in surprise as a hand touched his shoulder. Turning, he found Dorrien standing beside him, a familiar mischievous glint in his eyes.

“What have you done?” Rothen whispered accusingly.

“Nothing,” Dorrien replied, his eyes wide with feigned innocence. “Regin did it all himself. I just made sure someone was watching.”

Hearing Sonea’s box click open, Rothen watched as Jullen took out a black, shiny object. “My two-hundred-year-old Elyne inkwell.” The librarian frowned. “Valuable, but leaky. I must congratulate you, Regin. Even if Sonea had managed to return it herself, her notes would still be covered in ink.”

Regin looked at his guardian desperately.

“No doubt he wanted to ruin her notes,” Garrel said. “Just a silly prank.”

“I don’t believe so,” Galin interrupted. “Or he would simply have poured the contents all over her papers and left the inkwell on Lord Jullen’s desk.”

Garrel’s expression darkened, but Galin’s accusing stare remained steady. Lord Jullen looked from one magician to the other, then up at the shelves.

“Lord Dorrien,” he called.

Dorrien stepped into the aisle. “Yes?”

“Please find Sonea and bring her here.”

Dorrien nodded and strode down the rows of shelving. Rothen watched Sonea’s face as she came in sight of the magicians. At once her expresssion became wary. As Jullen explained what had happened her eyes widened, and she gave Regin a glare.

“I’m afraid your notes are ruined, Sonea,” Jullen said, tilting the box toward her. She looked inside and grimaced. “If you’d like, I’ll lock your box in my cupboard from now on.”

She looked up at him, surprised. “Thank you, Lord Jullen,” she said in a quiet voice.

He closed the box and placed it in the cupboard behind his desk. Galin looked at Regin. “You may return to your study, Sonea. Regin and I are going to have a chat with the University Director.”

She glanced at Regin once more, then turned away and walked back to the shelves. Dorrien hesitated, then followed.

Galin eyed Garrel. “Are you coming?”

The Warrior nodded.

As the two magicians and the novice left the library, Dorrien and Sonea approached Rothen. They both wore a look of unconcealed smugness. Shaking his head, Rothen gave them both a stern look.

“That was risky. What if no one had seen?”

Dorrien smiled. “Ah, but I made sure someone did.” He looked down at Sonea. “You managed to look convincingly surprised.”

She smiled slyly. “I was just surprised it worked.”

“Hmph!” Dorrien said. “Has nobody got any confidence in me?” He sobered and looked at Rothen. “Did you notice who took Jullen away from his desk and distracted everyone while Regin was doing his evil deed?”

Rothen thought back. “Garrel? No. Don’t be ridiculous. Regin was taking advantage of the situation. Just because Garrel was the one who asked for help and coughed at the same moment Regin made his move doesn’t mean he’s involving himself in childish pranks.”

“You’re probably right,” Dorrien said. “But I would keep an eye on him if I were you.”

19 The Tests Begin

The sky was just warming with the glow of dawn when Sonea left the Baths. The air was still cold, however, so she created a barrier about herself and heated the air within it. As she paused to straighten her robes, a green-robed figure stepped from the section of the Baths reserved for males.

Recognizing Dorrien, she felt her mood lighten. Since he’d planned to leave early this morning, they’d said their farewells last night over dinner in Rothen’s rooms. But now she had one more opportunity to speak to him before he left.

“I should have guessed you were an early riser,” she said.

Turning, he blinked in surprise. “Sonea! What are you doing up at dawn?”

“I always start early. I can get a few things done without anyone bothering me.”

He smiled crookedly. “A wise move, though maybe that won’t be nessessary now. Regin has been leaving you alone, hasn’t he?”

“Yes.”

“Good.” Tilting his head slightly, he gave her an odd look. “I was going to visit an old haunt of mine before I go. Want to come?”

“Where is it?”

“In the forest.”

She glanced up at the trees. “Another one of your secret places?”

Dorrien smiled. “Yes, but this time it really is a secret.”

“Oh? But if you show me, then it won’t be a secret.”

He chuckled. “I suppose not. It’s just a place I used to visit when I was a boy. I hid there whenever I was in trouble.”

“Then I’m sure you hid there a lot.”

“Of course.” He grinned. “So, are you coming?”

She looked down at her box. Her next stop was to be the Foodhall. “It won’t take long?”

He shook his head. “I’ll have you back in time for the tests.”

“Very well,” she said.

He started along the path that led up into the forest. Walking beside him, she thought back to the last time she had taken this route. It had been a cold night almost a year before, when she was still a “prisoner” of the Guild. Rothen had decided she needed fresh air and some exercise. Not far into the forest there was an ancient cemetery, and Rothen had explained what happened to magicians when they died.

She shivered as she remembered. When a magician’s life ended, his mind relinquished Control over his power. The remaining magic left in the body consumed it, turning flesh and bone to ash and dust. Since there was nothing to bury, magicians were never interred, so the existence of the ancient cemetery was a mystery.

Dorrien’s strides were long, and she had to walk quickly to keep up. Thinking back to the conversation of the previous evening, she remembered how eager he was to return to his home, but she couldn’t help wishing he could stay a little longer. She couldn’t remember enjoying herself as much as she had in the last few weeks. Though Rothen was good company, Dorrien was energetic and was always looking for opportunities for fun. He had taught her to levitate, and to play several games. All these games involved magic, and he was obviously relishing having a partner to play them with.

“What’s it like being the only magician among ordinary people?” she asked.

Dorrien considered the question. “It’s satisfying and challenging. People don’t ever forget that you’re different, no matter how close you get to them. They feel uncomfortable because you can do something they don’t understand. Some of the farmers won’t let me touch them, even though they’re happy to let me Heal their animals.”

She nodded. “People in the slums are like that. They’re terrified of magicians.”

“Most of the farmers were afraid of me at first. It took quite a while before they trusted me.”

“Do you get lonely?”

“Sometimes. It’s worth it, though.” They had reached the road now, and Dorrien turned to the left. “There’s something right about what I do. There are people in those mountains who would have died if I hadn’t been around to help.”

“That must be wonderful, knowing you saved someone’s life.”

Dorrien smiled. “It’s the best use magic can be put to. In comparison, the rest is just frivolous games. Father wouldn’t agree, but I’ve always thought Alchemy a waste of power, and Warrior Skills... well, what can I say?”

“The Alchemists say that they have created and invented ways to make people’s lives safer and more comfortable,” Sonea pointed out. “The Warriors say they are essential to the defense of Kyralia.”

He nodded. “The Alchemists have done some good work, and it isn’t wise to let magicians forget how to defend themselves. I guess I have a grudge against those who spend their time indulging themselves when they could be helping others. The ones who waste all their time on glorified hobbies.”

Sonea smiled as she thought of Dannyl’s experiments with transferring mind images to paper—abandoned now that he was a Guild Ambassador in Elyne. Dorrien probably wouldn’t approve of Dannyl’s “hobby.”

“There are too many Alchemists and not enough Healers,” Dorrien continued. “The Healers restrict their time to those with money and status because they don’t have time to treat everyone. We all learn basic Healing. There’s no reason why Alchemists and Warriors couldn’t spend some of their time assisting Healers. Then we could help more people.

“I treat anyone who needs my help: herders, crafters, farmers, passing travellers. There’s no good reason why Healers here shouldn’t do the same. The crafters here pay taxes, and part of that tax goes toward maintaining the Guild. They should have access to the service that their money sustains.”

His voice had grown stronger. Obviously this was something he believed in passionately.

“And the people in the slums?” she prompted.

He checked his stride and turned to look at her. “Yes,” he said, walking at a slower pace. “Though I think we would have to be careful how we went about it.”

She frowned. “Oh?”

“The slums are part of a much bigger problem, and we could easily waste a lot of time and effort. They’re like, if you’ll forgive me saying so, boils on the skin of the city, pointing to deeper troubles in the body. The boils won’t go away until the deeper problems are addressed.”

“Deeper problems?”

“Well,” Dorrien glanced at her again, “if I stick to my analogy I’d say that the city has grown into a fat, sweet-sucking old Warrior. He’s either unaware or uncaring that his greedy habits are destroying the systems of his body or that his paunch is making him ugly. He is already far from fit, but as he doesn’t have any more enemies to worry about, he’s happy to sit back and indulge himself.”

Sonea stared at him, impressed. What he was saying, she realized, was that the King and the Houses were greedy and lazy, and the cost of this was felt by the rest of the city’s citizens—like the dwells. He looked at her again, uncertainty in his eyes.

“That is,” he added quickly, “I’m not saying we shouldn’t do anything because it’s too big a problem. We should be doing something.”

“Like what?”

He smiled. “Ah, but I don’t want to spoil our walk by ranting and raving. Here, we’ve reached the road.”

Stepping onto the road, Dorrien led her past the houses of the older, retired Guild residents. As they reached the end of the road he continued into the forest, his boots crunching through the snow. Sonea followed behind, walking in his footsteps.

Soon the ground became uneven. Her heavy box made negotiating the forest difficult, so she left it sitting on a log, protected by a barrier of magic. The steep slope soon had her breathing hard. Eventually Dorrien stopped and placed his hand on the trunk of an enormous tree.

“The first marker. Remember this tree, Sonea. Walk in the same direction that the road leads until you reach it, then turn east and climb until you find the wall.”

“The Outer Wall?”

He nodded. Sonea suppressed a groan. The Outer Wall had to be a long way into the forest. They tramped uphill through the snow for several minutes, until Sonea was gasping for breath.

“Stop!” she cried when it seemed her legs couldn’t carry her any farther.

Dorrien turned and grinned, and she was gratified to see he was breathing hard. He gestured at a pile of snow-covered rocks ahead.

“The wall.”

Sonea stared at the snow, then realized that the rocks underneath were actually huge slabs of stone, scattered through the forest. This rubble was all that was left of the Outer Wall.

“Now,” Dorrien said between breaths. “We head north again.”

Before she could protest he was striding away. No longer climbing uphill, it was easier walking and she gradually caught her breath. Dorrien reached an outcrop of rocks, clambered over them and disappeared. Sonea followed his scrapings in the snow and found herself standing inside a small circle of boulders. From the profusion of trees she could see that this place would be well hidden when their leaves grew back. To one side water rippled down the rocks and gathered in an ice-edged pool before spilling away over more rocks.

Dorrien stood several paces away, smiling.

“This is it. The spring. The source of the Guild’s water.”

Walking to his side, she saw water pouring out of a crack in the rocks.

“It’s wonderful,” she said, looking up at Dorrien. “It must be lovely in summer.”

“Don’t wait for summer.” Dorrien’s eyes shone. “It’s just as wonderful in spring. I used to start visiting as soon as the snow began to thaw.”

Sonea tried to picture Dorrien as a boy, scrambling up the slope and sitting here on his own. The boy who became a novice of the Guild, then a Healer. She would come back, she decided. It would be a place to go when she needed some time alone, away from Regin and the other novices. Perhaps that was what Dorrien had intended all along.

“What are you thinking, little Sonea?”

“I want to thank you.”

His eyebrows rose. “Thank me?”

“For baiting Regin. For taking me up on the roof of the University.” She chuckled. “For teaching me to levitate.”

“Ah,” he waved a hand dismissively. “That was easy.”

“And for making me enjoy myself again. I think I almost believed that fun wasn’t part of being a magician.” She smiled crookedly. “I know you have to go back, but I wish you could stay longer.”

His expression grew serious. “I’ll miss you, too, little Sonea.” He took a step closer, then opened his mouth as if to say something else, but no words came. Putting a finger under her chin, he tilted her head up, bent closer and pressed his lips to her mouth.

Surprised, Sonea pulled away a little. He was very close, his eyes bright and questioning. Suddenly her face was too warm, and her heart was pounding very fast. She was smiling foolishly and, though she tried, she couldn’t stop. Dorrien laughed quietly, then bent to kiss her again.

This time his lips lingered and she was conscious of their softness and warmth. She felt a shiver run down her spine, but she wasn’t cold. When he moved away she swayed forward a little, prolonging the touch.

He stepped backward, his smile fading. “I’m sorry, that wasn’t fair of me.”

She swallowed. Found her voice. “Not fair?”

He looked down at his feet, his expression serious. “Because I’m going away. Because you might want or need someone else between now and who-knows-when and turn them away because of me.”

Sonea laughed, a little bitterly. “I doubt it.”

Dorrien’s gaze became wary. Sonea frowned. Did he now think that she welcomed his attention only because she thought nobody else would ever be romantically interested in her?

Was she? Until a moment ago she hadn’t even considered the possibility that he could be more than just a friend. She shook her head and smiled.

“You’ve given me quite a surprise this time, Dorrien.”

The corners of his lips curled upward.

—Dorrien?

She recognized Rothen’s mind-voice.

—Father, Dorrien replied.

—Where are you?

—I went for a morning walk.

—The stablemaster is here.

—I’ll be there soon.

Dorrien grimaced apologetically. “I’m afraid we took longer getting here than I thought we would.”

She felt a stab of apprehension. Was she late for the First Year tests?

“Come on.”

They scrambled over the rocks and started back. After several minutes hurrying through the forest, they reached the log she had left her box on. Not long after, they arrived at the road and were able to break into a jog.

From time to time she glanced at Dorrien, wondering what he was thinking. Other times she noticed him watching her, and he smiled as she looked up to meet his eyes. He reached out and took her hand. His fingers were warm, and she was disappointed when they came in sight of the Guild and he let his hand fall to his side.

As they approached the Magicians’ Quarters, Rothen strode out of the doors to meet them.

“Your horse is waiting out front, Dorrien.” Rothen looked them both up and down, noting the snow on their shoes and robes with raised eyebrows. “You had better dry yourselves.”

Steam wafted up from Dorrien’s clothes as they started down the path alongside the University. Concentrating, Sonea heated the air around her robes to dry them. A servant met them before the University staircase, holding the reins of Dorrien’s horse.

Dorrien enveloped first Rothen, then Sonea, in a firm hug.

“Take care of each other,” he said.

“Take care of yourself,” Rothen replied. “Don’t push yourself through blizzards just to get home sooner.”

Dorrien swung up onto the saddle. “There’s never been a blizzard that could keep me from home!”

“Then what have you been complaining about for these past four weeks?”

“Me? Complain?”

Laughing, Rothen crossed his arms. “Get out of here, Dorrien.”

Dorrien grinned. “Farewell, Father.”

“Farewell, Dorrien.”

Dorrien’s eyes flickered to Sonea’s. She felt a tentative touch at the edges of her mind.

—Farewell, Sonea. Learn fast.

Then Dorrien’s horse galloped away, racing through the gates and out into the snow-covered streets of the city.

For a few minutes they remained staring at the gates. Rothen sighed and turned to look at Sonea. His eyes narrowed.

“Hmmm,” he said. “Something’s going on here.”

She kept her expression neutral. “Like what?”

“Don’t worry.” He smiled knowingly, and started up the University stairs. “I approve. I don’t think the age difference will matter. It’s only a few years. You do realize you have to stay here until graduation, don’t you?”

Sonea opened her mouth to protest, then closed it again as she saw a movement in the Entrance Hall. She caught Rothen’s arm.

“I don’t mind you speculating, Rothen,” she told him quietly. “But I’d appreciate it if you did so privately.”

He frowned and looked at her in surprise. She kept her attention on the hall. As they stepped inside, the room echoed with the sound of rapid footsteps on the stairway treads. Looking up, Sonea glimpsed a familiar novice hurrying upward.

Her stomach turned. She’d had a clear look at the expression on Regin’s face before he slipped out of sight. She might have gained a begrudging sympathy from the teachers now that Regin had been caught setting her up as a thief, but she doubted she was free of his taunting. Preparations for the First Year tests had kept the boy occupied, but she suspected he was planning a particularly nasty revenge.

“I’ll see you tonight,” she told Rothen.

He nodded solemnly. “Good luck, Sonea. I know you’ll do well.”

She smiled, then started up the staircase. Reaching the top, she cautiously entered the corridor. The University was full of novices, their low voices and tense expressions creating an atmosphere of expectation and dread. Reaching her classroom, she stepped inside.

Regin sat in his usual place, watching her closely. Turning away, she bowed to the two teachers standing at the front of the room, and moved to her seat. She opened her box and took out the history project Lord Skoran had set. Flicking through the pages she was relieved to find them still in order, with no damage done. Though they had been intact when she had sealed the box before leaving her room, she had almost expected to find Regin had got at them somehow.

Skoran nodded approvingly as she handed the pages to him. To her satisfaction, he locked them in a box.

All the time, she was conscious of Regin watching her. Returning to her seat, she ignored the face she could see in the corner of her eye. She watched as the last novices entered the class and gave their work to the teacher. When all were present, Lord Vorel stepped forward and stood before them with his arms crossed.

“Today you will complete your First Year tests in Warrior Skills,” he informed them. “You will be required to fight all other members of the class, and will be marked according to skill, Control and, of course, number of victories. Please follow me.”

Sonea rose with the rest of the class. As the first novices filed out of the room, Regin turned and met her eyes. He smiled sweetly.

She had grown practiced at returning his looks with cold indifference. A chill dread now descended upon her. Though she was still far stronger than the other novices, the restrictions Vorel put on her kept her from using her powers to her advantage. Somehow the inner shield he held around novices to protect them as they fought told him if her strikes were more powerful than he thought appropriate. Regin was still better at Warrior Skills than she, and though the boy no longer had lessons with Lord Balkan, nothing had prevented him from having extra lessons with Lord Garrel.

As she stepped from the classroom, a servant in a messenger’s uniform skidded to a halt beside her.

“Lady Sonea,” the man said. “I have been sent to deliver an urgent request for you to return to Rothen’s rooms immediately.”

Surprised, she looked up at Lord Vorel. The magician frowned.

“We cannot wait for you, Sonea. If you do not return within the hour we will have to arrange a testing early next year.”

Sonea nodded. Thanking the messenger, she started along the corridor.

Why had Rothen sent for her? He would have barely had enough time to reach his rooms since they parted. Perhaps he’d discovered that Regin did have something planned, and had called her away to prevent it.

She shook her head. Rothen wouldn’t do that. He would attempt to alert Vorel to Regin’s plans rather than call her away from an important test.

Unless he wanted to simply tell her what to expect Regin to do. Perhaps he wanted to suggest a way she could turn whatever it was to her advantage. She could always still slip back to the Arena in time for the bouts.

But if that was so, why hadn’t he simply met her outside the classroom?

And why wasn’t he in his classroom, preparing to test his own class?

She frowned as she descended to the ground floor of the University. What if there was some other reason for the summons? The messenger hadn’t said that the message had come from Rothen. In that case Rothen might be the reason she was summoned. He might be ill. He wasn’t old, but he wasn’t young, either. He might be—

Stop worrying! she told herself. It’s probably nothing serious. Nevertheless she half ran across the courtyard to the Magicians’ Quarters. Her heart raced as she hurried up the stairs, and down the corridor to Rothen’s door.

The door swung open at her touch. Rothen stood by the window. He turned as she entered the room. She opened her mouth to ask the question hovering on her lips, but caught herself as she saw his warning expression.

She felt the presence first. It was tangible, unhidden. It filled the room like a thick, suffocating smoke. Terror sent her heart racing, but she managed to compose her expression to what she hoped was only surprise and respect. You don’t know why he’s here, she told herself as she turned. Don’t let him see that you’re frightened of him. Keeping her eyes on the floor, she turned to face the visitor and bowed.

“Excuse me, High Lord.”

He didn’t reply.

“Sonea.” Rothen’s voice was low and tense. “Come here.”

She looked at Rothen and felt her stomach twist. His face was pale, almost sickly. He beckoned, and his hand shook slightly. Disturbed by these signs of fear, she hurried to his side.

Rothen’s voice was surprisingly calm as he addressed the High Lord. “Sonea is here, as you requested, High Lord. How may we assist you?”

Akkarin fixed Rothen with a stare that would have turned her to ice.

“I am here to find the source of a certain... rumor. A rumor I drew from the Administrator concerning you and your novice.”

Rothen nodded. He seemed to choose his next words with great care.

“I thought that rumor about us had passed. Nobody appeared to give it credence and—”

The dark eyes flashed. “Not that rumor. I am referring to a rumor about my nocturnal activities. A rumor that must be stopped.”

A hand seemed to close on Sonea’s throat, making it hard to breathe. Rothen was frowning and shaking his head.

“You are mistaken, High Lord. I know nothing of your—”

“Do not lie to me, Rothen.” Akkarin’s eyes narrowed. “I would not have come here if I was not certain of it.” He took a step toward them. “I have just read it from Lorlen’s mind.”

All color drained from Rothen’s face. He stared at Akkarin in silence. If Akkarin read Lorlen’s mind, she thought, he knows everything! She felt her knees weaken, and, afraid she would sink to the floor, gripped the window sill behind her.

The High Lord smiled thinly. “I saw much that impressed me: how Sonea visited the Guild while she was still a renegade, what she witnessed that night, how Lorlen discovered this while truth-reading her during the guardianship Hearing, and that he ordered you both to keep the discovery a secret so that he could work out how he could possibly enforce the Guild’s law. A sensible decision. And fortunate for you all.”

Rothen straightened and raised his head to face Akkarin again. “We have not spoken a word of it to anyone.”

“So you say.” The High Lord’s voice softened, but lost none of its chill. “I would know that for certain.”

Sonea heard Rothen’s sharp intake of breath. The two magicians stared at each other.

“And if I refuse?”

“I will take whatever measures you force me to take, Rothen. You cannot prevent me reading your mind.”

Rothen looked away. Abruptly, Sonea recalled Cery’s description of Akkarin’s mind-reading. Cery had told her that, when Akkarin had discovered him imprisoned in a room under the University by Fergun, he had allowed the High Lord to read his mind to confirm the truth. It had been an easy thing, completely unlike Rothen’s mind-sharing or Lorlen’s truth-read, and she had concluded that the legend about Akkarin being able to read minds, whether they be willing or not, must have some truth in it.

Stiffly, as though his bones were those of a man twenty years older, Rothen moved toward the High Lord. Sonea stared at him, unable to believe he would give in so easily.

“Rothen...”

“It’s all right, Sonea.” Rothen’s voice was strained. “Stay where you are.”

Closing the distance between himself and her guardian in a few strides, Akkarin placed his hands against the sides of Rothen’s head. He closed his eyes and his face smoothed into an unexpectedly peaceful expression.

Rothen drew in a sharp breath and swayed. The hands at his sides clenched, then opened again. Sonea took a step forward and stopped. She dared not interfere. What if it caused Akkarin to harm Rothen? Frustrated, frightened, she clenched her fists until she felt her nails bite into her palms.

The two magicians remained still and silent for an unbearably long time. Then, without warning, Akkarin drew in a deep breath and opened his eyes. He regarded the man standing before him for a moment, then drew back his hands and stepped away.

Sonea watched anxiously as Rothen took a long, ragged breath and swayed a little. Akkarin crossed his arms, watching the old magician. Sonea cautiously stepped forward and took Rothen’s arm.

“I’m fine,” he said wearily. “I’m all right.” He rubbed his temples and grimaced, then squeezed one of her hands to reassure her.

“Now, Sonea.”

A shock of cold terror rushed through her body. She felt Rothen’s hands tighten their grip.

“No!” Rothen protested hoarsely. He put an arm protectively around her shoulders. “You know everything now. Leave her be.”

“I cannot.”

“But you’ve seen everything,” Rothen protested. “She’s only a—”

“A child?” Akkarin’s eyebrows rose. “A girl? Come now, Rothen. You know this will not harm her.”

Rothen swallowed hard, then slowly turned to her. He looked into her eyes. “He knows everything, Sonea. There is nothing to hide from him. Let him confirm it for himself if he must. It will not hurt.”

His eyes, though rimmed with moisture, were steady. Sonea felt him squeeze her hands, then release them. He stepped away. A terrible feeling of betrayal rose.

—Trust me. We must cooperate. It is all we can do for now.

She heard Akkarin’s footfall behind her. Her heart raced as she turned to face him. The black robes rustled softly as the High Lord moved forward. She backed away and felt Rothen’s hands on her shoulders.

Akkarin frowned as he reached toward her. Cool fingers brushed her face and she flinched. Then his palms pressed firmly against her temples.

A presence touched her mind, but it held no personality. She sensed no thoughts or feelings. Perhaps he didn’t have emotions. The thought wasn’t comforting.

Then an image flashed into her mind. She started, realizing she had been waiting for him to encounter the barriers in her mind. Somehow he had passed them. Checking, she saw that her defenses were intact, but his presence was not tangible enough to meet their resistance.

The same image kept flashing into her mind. It was of the underground room beneath his residence, seen from outside the door. A memory rose of the scene she had witnessed the night she had spied upon him.

Something took hold of that memory and began to sort through the details. Sonea remembered how Lorlen had manipulated her memories, and how she had been able to hide them by willing them out of her thoughts. Perhaps she could do that now. She tried to smother the memory, but the mind-read continued without a pause. Her efforts made no difference, she realized, because Akkarin was in control of the memory, whereas Lorlen had been only guiding and encouraging.

The discovery sent panic through her. In desperation, she tried to drown the memory with other thoughts and images.

Stop this.

An undertone of anger accompanied the words. Sonea paused, feeling a thrill of triumph as she understood she had found a way to hamper him. Her fear hardened into determination. She drew up lessons, lists of facts, images of work she had done. She bombarded him with pictures from text books and nonsense poems that she had discovered in the library. She threw memories of the slum, irrelevant, ordinary bits of her old life.

A mental image of a storm appeared—a funnel of images that kept him trapped at its core. She did not know if the picture was real, or something her mind had created...

Pain! Knives ripping through her skull. A cry reached her ears. Realizing that she had made it, she opened her eyes and her consciousness swayed between the outer and the inner world. Hands tightened on her shoulders. A voice came from above.

“Stop fighting me,” it commanded.

Hands pressed hard against her temples. She snapped back into the domain of her mind. Disoriented and shocked by the pain, she tried to regain some sense of balance. The presence returned to the task of digging up the memories he sought. He mercilessly called up image after image. This time she found herself reliving the moments in the North Square. Once more she threw the stone and fled from the fire of the magicians. Rooms and corridors of the slums flickered by. The day she had sensed Rothen’s searching mind and had instinctively hidden her presence. Cery, Harrin and his gang. Faren of the Thieves. Senfel, the Thieves’ magician.

Then she was creeping through the forest on the Guild grounds. The memories sharpened, were examined closely. Once more she climbed the wall of the Healers’ Quarters and watched the novices within. Once again she sensed the vibration around the Arena. She peered through windows into the University. Her journey took her around the back of the Guild again to look into the Novices’ Quarters and through the forest behind. Then, after Cery left to steal the books, she crept down to the strange, gray two-story building. The servant came, forcing her to retreat behind the low bushes. Then, seeing light coming through the ventilation holes, she crouched down and peered though.

A faint flicker of annoyance touched her senses. Yes, she thought, I’d be angry, too, if my secrets were discovered so easily. She saw the bloodstained man remove his clothes, clean himself and move away. Returning clad in black robes, the man spoke to his servant. “The fight has weakened me. I need your strength.” The man took an elaborate knife and cut the servant’s arm, then placed his hand over the wound. Once more she sensed the strange magic.

The memory stopped abruptly, and she sensed nothing from the mind that lurked behind hers. What was he thinking, she wondered...?

Have you allowed any to know of this other than Lorlen and Rothen?

No, she thought.

She relaxed, sure that this was all he sought, but a relentless interrogation followed as he quested after further memories. He explored parts of her life, from childhood to her lessons in the University. He sorted through her feelings, from her fondness for Rothen to her lingering loyalty to Cery and the people of the slums, to the new emotions she felt for Dorrien.

And, unbidden, came the anger she felt toward him for doing this to her. He sought her feelings about his practice of black magic, and her mind responded with disapproval and fear. Would she expose him if she could? Yes! But only if she knew Rothen and others would not be harmed.

Then the presence vanished and she felt the pressure against her temples stop. She opened her eyes and blinked. Akkarin had turned his back and was pacing slowly away from them. She felt Rothen’s hands on her shoulders, steady and reassuring.

“You would both expose me if you could,” Akkarin said. He was silent for a time, then turned to face them. “I will claim Sonea’s guardianship. Her abilities are advanced and, as Lorlen surmised, her strength is unusually high. None will question my choice.”

“No!” Rothen gasped. His grip tightened.

“Yes,” Akkarin replied, turning to face them. “She will ensure your silence. You will never cause anyone to know that I practice black magic while she is mine.” His eyes shifted to Sonea’s. “And Rothen’s wellbeing will be my guarantee that you will cooperate.”

Sonea stared at him in horror. She was to be his hostage!

“You will not speak to each other except to avoid raising suspicion. You will behave as if nothing more unusual than a change of guardianship has occurred. Do you understand?”

Rothen made a choking noise. Sonea turned to him, alarmed. He glanced at her and she saw guilt in his eyes.

“Don’t make me consider an alternative,” Akkarin warned.

Rothen’s voice was strained as he answered. “I understand. We will do as you ask.”

“Good.”

Akkarin took a step closer, and Sonea looked up to find him regarding her intently. “There is a room in my residence for the High Lord’s novice. You will come with me now, and send a servant for your belongings later.”

Sonea looked at Rothen, her throat tight. He searched her eyes.

—I’m sorry.

Now, Sonea.” Akkarin gestured at the door. It swung open.

She felt Rothen’s hands loosen. He gave her the tiniest push. Glancing at Akkarin, she realized she did not want Rothen to see her dragged away. He would find a way to help her. He would do everything he could. For now, they had no choice but to obey.

Taking a deep breath, she moved away from Rothen and stepped out into the corridor. Akkarin gave Rothen one last measuring look, then started toward the door. As the High Lord turned away, Rothen’s eyes narrowed with hatred.

Then the door closed and he was cut off from her sight.

“Come along,” Akkarin said. “The novice’s room in my residence hasn’t seen an occupant in many years, but it has always been kept ready for one. You’ll find it much more comfortable than those in the Novices’ Quarters.”

Загрузка...